BDSM Library - Cindy's Lessons

Cindy's Lessons

Provided By: BDSM Library
www.bdsmlibrary.com



Synopsis: Sarah was Jenny's mother and now her lover.Jenny was angry and hurt. Her friend, Cindy had tricked and influenced her to blackmailing her mother into becoming their slave. They humiliated and tortured her for Cindy and her friend's amusement.After Sarah broke free of her slavery. Jenny and Sarah were determined to teach Cindy a lesson. Jenny wanted more than anything to show Cindy what it felt like for Sarah. Sarah wanted to teach Cindy a lesson but Jenny wanted take her revenge out on Cindy.

CINDYS LESSONS   Part  1


Authors Note: This story is related to the story “My Daughter Becomes My Mistress”.  For those of you that havent read that story, I will give a brief setup to this story. For those of you that read “My Daughter Becomes My Mistress”, you can skip this “setup” and start at the “beginning” of the story. Although this story relates to the other, it is separate and can stand on its own without necessarily knowing the other story. That is why it is not just a continuation. It is a new story.


SETUP: 

My name is Sarah. I am 5 8”, deep auburn hair, and I have been told I should have been a model. I am continuously stared at and have been told many times that I am the most beautiful woman in the world. I do not take that seriously and I am NOT vain. I am in good shape because early in my life I used to work out with weights and I am still a little muscular. I still exercise and I am in great shape, still. I have two children. Mike, my step-son is now 21 and built like his father. He is average height but very muscular. Mike and I have learned to love each other over the years so had still lived with my daughter and me. My daughter, Jenny, is 16 and is a typical teenager. She is pretty and has my body. I have always been attracted to her. She is a good kid and has many friends.

Although Sarah was technically Jennys mother, they were now lovers in every sense of the word. Each loved the other very much. Before this point, Jenny had maneuvered Sarah into being her slave. Jenny wanted her life to be easy but her friend Cindy had a lot of influence on the way Jenny was handling Sarah. Cindy was responsible for hypnotizing Sarah. Cindy was responsible for many of the degrading and cruel things that were done to Sarah that Jenny wouldnt normally do. For a short time, Cindy even had blackmailed one of their friends to become Cindys slave. Cindy was cruel to her and made her suffer until her slave had moved away.

Finally at the end, Sarah broke all the influences they had on her. She even broke the hypnosis that was done on her due to priorities that went way beyond anything that had been done to her.

       During Sarahs service they had done many things: The hypnosis, installing permanent bondage equipment in the house and forced Sarah to do degrading things for their amusement. There were too many to list them all here.

       At the end, Jenny felt a lot of guilt about what she had done. She knew that even though Cindy was somewhat the mastermind to it all, she was ultimately responsible. She dropped to her knees and devoted herself to be Sarahs slave for all the cruel harm that was done to Sarah.

       Sarah told her she didnt want her as a slave. She told her she loved her and wanted her to be her lover, not her slave. She said, “I want your devotion and service out of love not out of fear, blackmail, or guilt. I want us to be together as lovers, physically and in spirit.” Jenny collapsed in her arms and from that point on they would be together always. They started to do many of the things Sarah had done earlier except now it was done out of fun for both of them. They spent a lot of time at the mall teasing teenage boys. Many of them would be running out of the mall with cum all over their clothes. The two of them had fun together. They also made a lot of use of the bondage equipment that had been installed. They use it all to please each other and not out of any malice or vengeance. They wanted to please each other out of love and both knew it was the only way to live. They were happy except there was one thing that they thought about a lot.

They both realized that Cindy was a dark and cruel person and that she should experience what it is like to be one of her slaves. Maybe that would make the world just a little brighter. They knew they had to make a plan to “capture” her, either with blackmail or some other means.


They had to come up with a plan……………….





BEGINNING:


Sarah and Jenny had been discussing strategies about how to capture Cindy and finally agreed to try one of their plans. They needed to get Cindy over there first. Sarah told Jenny that Cindy didnt know about everything that just happened. She still thought Sarah was Jennys slave. They both agreed this was a good way to get her here without her getting suspicious.

Jenny called Cindy later that day and told her that the bitch (Sarah) was lonely and needed another play date with Rex (Cindys dog). Cindy laughed and told Jenny shed be over a little later and that she had some things to do first. Jenny and Sarah got everything ready. They purchased another collar for Sarah just like the one she had welded on except this one was not locked or permanently attached. It was for Cindys benefit so she wouldnt get suspicious. They got Sarahs “doggie” bed all set up in the living room with a chain attached to one of the floor bolts just like before. They used a broken lock that could be easily pulled open and planned on using it. Everything would be ready and just as before when Cindy came by later. Sarah would be “locked” to her leash and laying in her little bed when Cindy arrived.

Late they got everything all ready. Sarah was “chained” to the floor on her “leash” and lying on her little bed.


Jenny looked sadly at Sarah and said: “I dont like this. You shouldnt have to wear that stuff. There must be another way”


Sarah: “This is necessary and it wont be for long. Remember, you MUST call me “bitch” or “slut” or Cindy will know somethings wrong. She has a mean spirit but shes not stupid. You might even want to kick me a little and call me other names. Whatever happens It MUST be done like this. Even if Rex has to fuck me first we have to put up with whatever happens. This might be our ONLY chance. You MUST DO THIS!”


Jenny got down on her knees and kissed Sarah and said: “I know but I hate doing it this way. It is too much like before. You should NEVER have this done to you again, even pretending.”


Sarah, looking into Jennys eyes said: “Just remember that Cindy deserves this. We both must put up with this. Just think of the things we will be teaching Cindy, when we “catch” her.”


Jenny winked and said: “You are right but I expect to be punished later when we are finished with this and have Cindy.”


They both laughed when Sarah said: “You will be. Youll deserve it for all this pain and suffering I have to put up with. Now put on your clothes like before and well wait.”


They laughed and hugged each other. They were a little nervous and knew that they were teasing even though Sarah thought a punishment for Jenny could be fun. She smiled and decided she would give it some thought for later. She knew Jenny would get a nice punishment and would be forced to enjoy it. She lay down on her little bed like a dog and waited. Jenny was pacing a little. She was young and not used to this kind of thing. Sarah begged with her to relax. Cindy deserved this and they wanted to give it to her.

Jenny was still a little nervous but Sarah was ready. Jenny was also a little on the naive side and Cindy exploited Jennys somewhat innocent nature. This is what angered Sarah the most. She could put up with a lot of the humiliation but Jenny apparently had a hard time dealing with it. Cindy was somewhat of a devious person and could be very “sweet” when she wanted something. They both realized that now. They were both foolish to have anything to do with her. It was different now. Cindy didnt know that she was not the one in charge anymore. They waited.

By the time they got everything set up, it was not long when Cindy got there. She walked into the house with Rex at her side. Jenny glared a little at Rex. She hated that dog now. That dog had fucked the one person in the world that she truly loved for the sole purpose of entertaining their friends. At the same time she felt guilty for letting it happen.  After Sarah looked at her and winked, she shook off those thoughts and got back to reality. She still felt this mountain of guilt but placed a lot of her anger at Cindy. She suddenly realized that Rex was not to blame. All this went through her head in a couple of seconds. She put it all “in her back pocket” for now and asked Cindy if she wanted anything to drink before the show. Cindy told her to get her a beer and to get one for herself.  Jenny told her to hang on to Rex until she got back.

Cindy got down and petted Rex and told him he will get another fuck form his bitch today. She told him that nothing is too good for him. Sarah was a good actor and looked at them with a defeated look on her face which made Cindy laugh. She said to Rex, “See. Even your bitch is happy to see you today.”

Jenny came back into the room with two beers and handed one to Cindy. Cindy unlocked Rex from his leash and told him to go play with his bitch. Rex walked over to Sarah and started to sniff her and lick her face. Jenny was getting worried. She didnt want this to happen. She felt like strangling Cindy at this point. Jenny almost started crying when Rex started to sniff around Sarahs ass and pussy. Sarah had no choice but to stick her ass up for him. Rex was becoming familiar with this strange new “dog” that he was fucking and it didnt take as long to “mount” her as before. Rex got onto Sarahs back and started to stick his now emerging cock into her pussy. Sarah started to moan with pleasure. Rexs cock was sliding into her pussy like it belonged there.

Cindy started laughing and said, “I guess you were right. Rexs new bitch WAS getting lonely. He is being so nice to her. You know, Jenny, Rex cant be on call 24/7. He needs his rest. You might have to rent a dog to keep this bitch happy. Sarah began to moan louder and yell, OH YES! FUCK ME REX! FUCK ME HARDER!!”  Sarah started to hump back in rhythm to Rexs humping. Sarah and Jenny had set this up but it appeared that Sarah was truly enjoying Rex. He was now pumping like a jackhammer and it looked like Sarah couldnt get enough. She was moaning and yelling. Suddenly Sarah had a huge orgasm and screamed like a bitch in heat. Rex was pumping his load in Sarah at the same time. He stiffened up with his tongue hanging out and pumped the last of his load up her pussy. Sarah started to collapse but Rex held her up. His knot was still stuck. After a couples minutes, Rex pulled hard, Sarah yelped in pain and Rexs cock pulled out of Sarahs pussy. Sarah fell back down on her bed while Rex began to lick himself clean.

Cindy was laughing so hard she almost fell off the couch. Sarah just lay there with Rexs cum dripping out of her pussy when Rex finally walked over to Cindy and lay at her side. Jenny tears were rolling down her cheek as she watched it all. Her one true love was being humiliated and tortured by this bitch, Cindy. Jenny glared at Rex again and knew that it was not his fault it was Cindys fault.

Jenny couldnt hold back any longer. She grabbed the lamp and swung it at Cindy. She hadnt even hit her but Cindy was now lying on the floor. She was stirring around a bit but was completely oblivious to what was going on. She was completely and absolutely under the influence of the drug they had put in her beer.

Jenny, crying, ran over to Sarah to help her. She pulled her up and was crying like a baby on her shoulder. She kept saying she was so sorry to put her through that again. Jenny told Sarah that Sarah should let her give her a bath to clean her up. Sarah smiled and got up saying, “We dont have time for that. Those drugs wont last long. We only have an hour or two before your “doctor” shows up and we have some work to do, first.” Sarah pulled all the chains, straps and collar off and all of the locks and started to walk towards Cindy.

Jenny knew who she meant. It was the woman that hypnotized Sarah. This woman had a medical degree and was working on a PHD in psychiatry. She was an EXPERT in hypnotism and was not too concerned with the Hippocratic Oath if she got paid enough.

Before she arrived, Sarah told Jenny they had some work to do before she got there. Sarah told Jenny to go set up the camera equipment and she would get Cindy ready. Sarah locked Rex in the laundry room until she was ready for him. . Cindy was easy to handle.  She was not “dead weight”. She was still semi-conscious but in her own little world of drugged happiness.  Sarah stripped Cindy and took her clothes upstairs for now. She pulled her over to where the floor bolts were attached and locked some straps onto her wrists and ankles. She locked all four limbs to the bolts in the floor so she was not able to move from this “doggie” position. Sarah then put a small step-stool under her stomach so she wouldnt fall over. By the time she got Cindy ready, Jenny had set up the camera so it was pointed at Cindy. Jenny laughed when she saw Cindy. She was happy now that she understood what Sarah was doing. While Sarah was getting Rex, Jenny fine-tuned the camera, focused it in and set the sound. Sarah brought Rex in and handed him to Jenny and told her to hold him until she signaled for him.

Sarah had one final thing to do before they were ready. The drug they gave Cindy would wear off quickly. They only needed her “out” for a few minutes to get her ready for what lay ahead. Just as she was awakening, Sarah went over to her with a small box. It contained a syringe with the real drug in it. This would keep her awake, yet under their control. She was an easy target with her ass up in the air like that and when Sarah stuck it in her ass and pumped the drug in, she gave out a sharp little grunt. She was already getting over the drug that was in her drink. It was a somewhat “graceful transition from one drug to the other. Soon she was totally under the influence of the second drug. Sarah was glad it worked out well. She told Jenny that this drug would last for a few hours. It was plenty long enough for what they had in mind.

Sarah went over to Cindy and quietly said: “Cindy, you boyfriend is here. He said he needs you right now. He has had a long day and needs you to relieve his tension. He wants you on your hands and knees this time. He said it is his favorite position and thats why he loves you. Remember that guys need to be reminded that their cocks are bigger than anyone elses and they need to know what a big “stud” they are too.”


Cindy Mumbled: “MMMM...yes, he can have me however he wants. Tell him he has the biggest cock I have ever seen. Tell him, I love him too.”


Sarah (to Cindy): “It would be nice if you told him how wonderful his performance is, dont you?”


Cindy Mumbled: “Yes. You are right. He deserves to know how I feel. He is the best!”


Sarah pulled out a small can of something and sprayed it on Cindys cunt, the signaled Jenny to release Rex. Rex came over to Cindy and after getting one quick sniff of her cunt went crazy. He quickly jumped on her back and started to push his cock in her cunt. Sarah leaned down and, imitating a mans voice, said, “Here it comes, Cindy. I love you. Let me know what you need and how it feels.”

Sarah quickly jumped aside and told Jenny to start the camera, and then they sat down to watch the show. Rex was acting like he was crazy Jenny asked, “Why is he like that. He wasnt with you.” Sarah giggled and told her that stuff she sprayed on her was the same stuff they spray on female dogs to get the males to breed with them. It drives the males WILD! They both laughed and started to watch when Jenny whispered to Sarah that they should be quiet because she had the sound on in the camera. Sarah grinned from ear to ear and pulled Jenny to her and kissed her with all the love she felt for her. They were kissing and tonguing each other when they heard Cindy.

Cindy was humping and yelling in pleasure. She was saying, “OH YES! FUCK ME! FUCK ME! YOUR COCK IS SO BIG! NO ONE DO ME LIKE YOU CAN! I AM HERE FOR YOU TO FUCK ANYTIME YOU NEED! YOUR COCK IS SO DAMN BIG! NO ONE IS AS GOOD AS YOU ARE! MAKE ME CUM! MAKE ME CUM!”

We just kept trying to keep as quiet as we could while laughing. It looked like Rex has a new bitch to fuck. More so because his new bitch seems to appreciate him even more than his last one did. She cant seem to keep from telling him what a wonderful cock he has. The camera was getting all of this. This was the first of Cindys lessons she would learn when she “woke up”.

Cindy was still humping when suddenly she screamed: “OH YES..OH YES…IM FUCKING CUMMING! IM GOD DAMN FUCKING CUMMING! OH GOD, I CANT LIVE WITHOUT THAT BEAUTIFUL COCK OF YOURS! I MUST HAVE IT!! I MUST HAVE ALL OF IT…NOW!

Cindy screamed so loud, it sounded like a siren in the living room. Rex just kept humping and drooling on her like he was a mad dog. Finally, Rex pumped his load into his new bitchs cunt. Cindy collapsed on the stool she was on and went completely limp. After am minute or so, Rex pulled out of her cunt with a plop. Cindy just moaned with pleasure and said, “I love you. I am your one true love, forever. Please dont ever leave me.” Then she suddenly passed out and actually fell off the stool and collapsed onto the floor as well as the straps would let her. Rex walked back to her and lay down next to her. He licked her cunt clean, then licked his cock clean again for the second time today. Hes been a busy boy.

Sarah quietly went to the camera and turned it off. Sarah went over to Cindy and took all the straps off and put the collar on her and locked her collar to one of the chains that was locked to a bolt in the floor. Sarah dragged Cindy onto her new bed. It was the same one that Sarah had to use. Sarah told Jenny that it wasnt too bad. The bed was sort of comfortable and had enough room for two. They both laughed hard and loud at that when they saw Rex go lay down against Cindy and go to sleep. Cindy was apparently still lost in her world of pleasure and drugs.

The “doctor” hadnt arrived yet so they put the chip form the camera and loaded it onto the computer and two other flash drives that they had hidden in the house. They put one in the TV video unit and watched the show. It was beautiful. It was better than they ever could have hoped for. Cindy was on her hands and knees begging for Rex to fuck her and telling him she loved his cock. She kept telling Rex she loved him and that he was the only one for her. The film was Hollywood quality and should get an award for best production by a bitch. Sarah was laughing but Jenny started crying and hugged Sarah. Jenny was still upset over them having to let Rex fuck Sarah to set this up. Sarah hugged her back and pulled her head up and said, “This was necessary and that she should forget about it and think ahead to all the fun they will have with Cindy.” Jenny stopped crying and smiled, knowing Sarah was right and that she would let Cindy know just how Sarah felt while being humiliated like that. Sarah said as Jenny stopped crying, “Besides, neither of you ever thought to take pictures of Rex and me. There is no evidence, just people who will claim to have seen me.” Jenny felt better about that. Sarah was right. There was no evidence that Rex ever fucked her and Cindy was now in NO position to support anyones story.

Cindy “stirred” a couple times but was still asleep when the “Doc” got there. When The “Doc” came into the room she saw Cindy and looked surprised.


Doc:  “What is this all about? Why do have her chained up naked?”


Sarah: “Do you remember when you hypnotized me? That is where I spent all my time after that. Hypnotizing me was all her (indicating Cindy) idea. We are not hurting her and have no intention of hurting her. We are simply trying to teach her what it feels like to be submitted to this type of treatment.”


Doc: “I see. How is it that you are no longer under the influence of my hypnotism? No one has ever broken free of it. How did you??”


Sarah (Smiling at Jenny): “There was something else that was more important than any hypnotic suggestion that I was influenced by. It completely overrode all other things, including being hypnotized by you.”


Doc: “Thats amazing! I would love to interview you at the campus sometime, if youre available. I have never heard of anything like this! I told Jenny when we hypnotized you that there was something different about you but I couldnt figure it out. I STILL cant.”


Sarah: “You will have to live your life not knowing. I have no intention of being put under your microscope. Just know that there are some things out there that have priority over everything else. These things cannot be denied or ignored. Simply put; they are more important. Now lets get to work, here.”


The Doctor stared at Sarah for a moment, and then decided to let it go and get to the task at hand. The Doctor asked Sarah if she had the fee for this office visit. Sarah handed her and envelope and said, “That should take care of the entire bill for the visit.” The doctor said, “thank you.”

She had them bring Cindy over and place her comfortably on the couch. The doctor asked them what they gave her. Sarah explained that it was a dose of sodium pentothal. She told the Doctor the exact dose. The Doctor said it wasnt what she was going to use but it would work just fine. She told Sarah that it was a good second choice and that Cindy was just a little to drugged up to begin. They would have to give her about a ½ to 1 hour, yet.

The three of them went into the kitchen to have some coffee while keeping an eye on Cindy. She was still too drugged to understand what was being said to her so they waited. The Doctor kept asking Sarah about how she was able to shake off the hypnosis but Sarah would tell her. Finally Sarah said, “Let it go, Doc. Its a very personal thing to me and I will not discuss it with you and I would appreciate you not to keep asking about it.” The Doc said, “OK. I understand but if you ever change your mind, call me. There is some money in it for you.” Sarah only said, “NO!” Nothing more was said about it.

A little while later Cindy seemed to be just clear-headed enough for the Doctor to begin. It didnt take long for Cindy to fall under the Docs hypnotic influence. Even the Doc was surprised. She told Sarah and Jenny that there are some people that have a somewhat weak will. They go under quickly and easily. Cindy must be one of those people.


Sarah proceeded to give Cindy the list of her new orders:



Sarah: “Cindy, can you hear me?”


Cindy: “yes”


Sarah: “listen carefully. You will obey the following orders at all times. You will only obey these orders when given by either me or Jenny. Any orders we give you must be in person, by either me or Jenny, not recorded or by phone or ANY other remote or mechanical type of communication. You will not obey any orders if Jenny or I are being forced by anyone to give them.”


Sarah: “Do you have any questions about these orders, so far?


Cindy: “No.”


Sarah: “These are the orders. Listen carefully.


  1. You will never be able to achieve an orgasm unless Jenny or I give you permission. If we give you permission, you will obey it along with ANY conditions we place on it. If no conditions are specified, you can cum as much and however you wish but for only 24 hours, then your permission is no longer valid and you will need permission again.


  1. Whenever Jenny or I say the words, “Piss Bitch”, you will immediately and wherever you are empty your bladder and piss all over everything like a little baby. You will not be able to stop yourself.


  1. Whenever Jenny or I say the words, “Pain on”, you will feel like you cunt is on fire, being kicked by a bull and being torn out from the inside, all at the same time. This pain will be the most intense and greatest pain you ever felt. It will continue until Jenny or I say the words, “Pain off”, one hour has passed. After either one of those happen, the pain will stop and there will be no damage done what so ever. As you lose consciousness, the pain will lessen until you start to recover your senses, then reintensify back to full strength. This process will cycle so you will NEVER lose consciousness. You will feel this pain until we say “pain off”.



       

The following order will never be part of you conscious thoughts. You will never be aware of them, even if someone explains to you these fallowing orders you will immediately forget them but you WILL obey these also. All of these hypnotic orders that I give you today will be in effect always unless one of the three things happen:


  1. You do not hear form Jenny or myself for one year.
  2. Both Jenny and I are killed
  3. Jenny and I sing the National anthem of France to you in English.



I will ask you one last time. Do you understand all these orders, Cindy?”




       Cindy: “Yes.”


       Sarah then told the Doctor that she was finished but she wanted Cindy to be awake for only fifteen minutes and then sleep through the night before she woke up. She told the doctor to get her to go back to the little bed to lock her up before she woke her. When they had Cindy all chained up like before with the collar locked on and to the chain and the chain locked to one of the large eye bolts in the floor, The Doctor brought her out of her trance. Then left before Cindy saw her.

       Cindy slowly woke up and saw she was locked to the floor and said: “Whats this?! Why am I locked up like this? Jenny, whats going on? Let me loose! Why is the slut unlocked with her collar off??!! LET ME LOOSE!”


       Sarah: “Thats not going to happen, Cindy, or should I say, “bitch”. You understand, now, that you are now Rexs bitch and will do as we say.”


       Cindy: “I will not! Jenny, make her let me loose. We are friends. I helped you to get her under your control. Why are you doing this to me?”


       Jenny: “I never wanted to hurt Sarah by doing all those things you suggested. I love Sarah more than anything and I only wanted my life to be a little easier. I never meant to hurt her like you wanted to. It was ultimately my fault and I take responsibility but you are just plain mean. You have a dark side to you and are the one that needs to learn a few lessons about what it means to be controlled by someone. You are under the same hypnotic control we had over Sarah except for a few small changes.  You will never have that earth shattering orgasm that Sarah could have. You are not worth it. The pain will be there when we wish and you have a standing order to NEVER have an orgasm unless we let you.”


       Cindy (bitch): “I dont believe you. Youre lying. I was never hypnotized. You drugged me and chained me up. I dont recall getting hypnotized. You cant keep me chained up forever. When I get lose you two will regret it.”


       Sarah: “You had better start behaving or YOU will regret it! “Pain on”.


       The effect was instantaneous and unbelievable. Sarah knew what was happening. She had experienced it, first hand. The bitch curled up into a ball and started screaming and holding her cunt! Sarah knew the pain was something unimaginable to someone that hadnt experienced it before. It radiated up her cunt and right into the spirit. That intense and concentrated pain was her whole world right now. You could go and kick her in the head and she wouldnt know it. It didnt take long for her to start to pass out. As ordered, the pain lessened for a bit until she regained her senses then returned to full strength. She was screaming at the top of her lungs with an occasional “please” thrown in there. Sarah felt a little sympathy and vowed she would only use this as a last resort. She needed the bitch to feel it now to make her realize what that pain felt like.

Finally, after five minutes, Sarah said, “Pain off”. The effect was just as sudden as before. The pain ended and the bitch was crying and stayed curled up for a few seconds. She recovered quickly. Since the pain was not due to physical damage, it stopped instantly with no aching or after effects at all.

Cindy, now known as “bitch” was still crying. Despite her arrogance and loud mouth, she was not that strong, physically or mentally. She looked up and said, “Please dont do that again.”


Jenny: “The hypnotism will be used only as a last resort. We have something more important to convince you to behave. Watch this little film, made. You are the star!”


They turned on the film so the bitch could watch it. She sat quietly and stared in disbelief.  She had no memory of that. She begged them to turn it off but they wanted her to see the whole thing so she would understand what it meant.


After the video had finished, Sarah said: “This video has been uploaded to a website containing your full name and other pictures. If someone does a search for you on the web, it will lead them to this site. The only thing that will prevent them for seeing this is a secret code they would have to enter to see it. Otherwise they will only get a message that says, “This site is under construction.” If one of us does not enter a counter code after a certain period of time, the site will automatically open and anyone can watch your little performance along with a written message form you that explains your true feelings for dogs and especially for Rex. It shows you and Rex in several innocent pictures that you have of the two of you hugging and playing, along with the video. Anyone seeing this site will quickly get the message of how much you love dog cock.”


Cindy: “You two will NEVER get away with this. I will go to the police and report you. Then well see who is in charge!”


Sarah: “What will you tell them? Will you explain to them that you only fucked Rex because we asked you to? You are the one that was screaming how much you love Rex and his wonderful cock! It is our word against yours and besides, the video will be all over the news. They will show it in court too. They will need to see ALL the evidence! Then the website will be released too. No one will be able to trace that site to us. I am an expert in computers! Then after all that, you will still lose. I have several witnesses that will testify as to how much you “love” Rex. Your friends are somewhat unreliable if you will make them look bad. They are fare weather friends”. They will scatter like rats and crawl back into their holes to distance themselves from someone that loves to fuck dogs! You will be totally alone in this. If you behave and do as youre told, this will all be our little secret and no one will find out. You can continue your creepy life while under our control. NOW DO YOU UNDERSTAND??!”


Cindy: “Yes, I will do as you say. Please dont tell anyone, PLEASE? I have no family and my friends are all I have. Without them, I am totally alone!”


Jenny: “Now we are your friends. We have no intention of going anywhere. We will all be together. That should make you feel better. You now have two friends that will TOTALLY loyal to you and will never leave you.”


Sarah laughed at Jennys comment. That thought had never occurred to her. The bitch just sat there with a blank look on her face in disbelief. They told the bitch that she didnt need to call them by the term “Mistress” but she should ALWAYS talk to them with respect, wherever they are.

Sarah and Jenny went into the kitchen and left the bitch chained to the floor. All she could do is lie on her new bed and wait for them to return and tell her what to do. They sat down at the kitchen table and discussed what they were going to do, next.


Sarah: “Well, Jenny, We got her. Now what do YOU want to do with her. I have some suggestions of my own but I would like to know what you want. We will always be together in everything.”


Jenny (Hugging Sarah): “We will always be together. NOTHING AND NO ONE WILL EVER SEPARATE US! I do have a few ideas for her……………………………………………..

…….To be continued.





       


       


       







Cindys Lessons Part 2


When we left off last time, Sarah and jenny were in the kitchen deciding what to do and the bitch (Cindy) was chained to an eye bolt in the floor and the other end of the chain to a metal collar around her neck. Both ends of the chain were locked with paddle locks and she was left lying on her little bed on the floor. It was a large doggie bed and was actually very comfortable.



Jenny: “We should go to her apartment and see what she has. We need to get her some clothes to wear in public. The ones she usually wears cover too much up. She should show off some of that nice body of hers.”


Sarah: “Thats a good idea. We should also sell her car. She wont need it anymore. If she owes money on it, I will pay it off, and then sell it. We can afford it. Your father left us a good settlement through the military for his death. Since she wont have a car she wont need a drivers license either. We will start with this for now. Lets go to her place and get to work.”


Jenny: “This sounds like more work than I thought. I can think of a few ways for her to pay us back for all this work, though. Lets go.”


Sarah and Jenny came into the living room where the bitch was tied up.


Sarah: “Were going to your place to check it out and to bring you some proper clothes to wear. We will leave Rex lose for you to play with if you wish to. I will put a bowl of water down for you and Rex in case you get thirsty. If I find ANY mess on the floor from either you OR Rex, you will clean it up! Do you understand me, bitch?!”


Bitch (glaring at Sarah): “Yes!”


Sarah: “You had better lighten up the tone of your voice or things will get rough on you VERY FAST around here!”


Bitch: “Yes, Sarah.”


Sarah and Jenny left for the bitchs apartment in her car so the neighbors wouldnt think anything unusual is going on. On the way out, they took all the bitchs things. They took her clothes, purse and everything that was in her pockets and left. As they drove away, Jenny told Sarah that it was funny that they left Cindy all chained up and Rex was lose in the house. They both laughed at that.

When they got to the bitchs apartment, they noticed that it was a bit messy but not dirty. They located all her identification, credit card bills, utility bills, rent bills, all her bank statements and the title to her car. They also found all the passwords to ALL her accounts and files. She didnt hide them very well. Sarah also took the hard drive from her computer. The last thing they wanted before they went back home was a new set of clothes for the bitch. They found some skirts and modified one along with a top. The skirt was now so short, it barely would cover her ass and the top would be just at the bottom of her tits. Sarah smile and said, “I sure know what it feels like to wear this in public while trying to keep everything covered. I hope the bitch has just as much “fun” as I did.”

It took about 2 hours before they returned home. The bitch was curled up on her bed with Rex next to her. The two of them seemed to be getting along just fine. She looked up at them and saw them holding a small box of something and asked, “What is in the box?”


Sarah: “Since you asked so nicely I will tell you. This is your entire life in this box, bitch. We have some small modifications for your new life that the three of us need to take care of. We will sort it all out and let you know what your future holds for you.”


Bitch: “Please…Please dont do this. I will never do anything like this again..Please….?”


Sarah: “You sound very convincing but I had begged you for mercy once or twice and all you did was bring you friends to watch so all of you could get a good laugh at me. Jenny and I will not hurt you but you need to learn several lessons and it might take a long time. We dont want to be hassling around with your small troubles at the same time.”


As Sarah said that last statement, she shook the box a little to indicate that she was referring to all of the bitchs former life.


Bitch (Yelling): “You two sluts will never get away with this. Someday I will be free and when that happens, we will see who gets hurt!!”


Jenny had been fairly quiet up until now but when the bitch yelled at them, she walked over to her and balled up her fist and back handed the bitch in the face and told her to shut up. Jenny told her that she was already going to be punished and now it just got worse. Sarah didnt say anything and took the box into the kitchen. The bitch just glared at Jenny on the way out.

About an hour later, Sarah and Jenny came back into the room and told the bitch to come over to the middle of the room under the eye bolts in the ceiling. As they were stringing her up to a bolt in the ceiling she started to fight them and yell obscenities at them. Sarah punched her in the stomach to calm her down. They strung her up so she was hanging by her left leg together with her left hand. Her right leg, hand and head were dangling down. The bitch was not in a comfortable position and started to complain. Sarah told her if she didnt shut up, she would get a punch somewhere that she would like even less than the stomach. The bitch just glared at them but kept quiet.

Sarah brought several letters out that were typed up. These are what the letters were for:


1) To close her bank accounts and transferred the money to Sarahs bank account.


2) The second letter was written to turn in and cancel her drivers license.


3) The next one was written to sublet and transfer her apartment in Sarahs name.


4) The rest were written to cancel all her credit cards.


5) The next was the title to her car. It was now cleared by the bank and to be signed off for transfer.

6) The last thing they took was her social security card.


Sarah brought them to her with a clip board and told her to sign them all. The bitch spit at her and told her to go to hell and that she would never sign any of those. Sarah tried to put the ball gag in her mouth but she would open it. She nodded at Jenny and Jenny went and got a leather strap and swung it as hard as she could and hit the bitch right on her cunt. When she let out a scream, Sarah jammed the gag into her mouth and locked it in. Sarah asked her one more time to sign the letters. The bitch shook her head no as hard as she could while still reeling from the pain.


Sarah: “Fine. IF this is the way you want to play, I can accommodate you. You WILL sign them eventually. You might as well do it now and save yourself a lot of pain. I will ask you ONE LAST TIME. Will you sign?”


The Bitch (Shaking her head “no”: “MMFF…..MFFFF!


Sarah: “PAIN ON!”


Sarah was quite familiar with what happened next because she had experienced it herself when She was a slave to Jenny and the bitch. The effect was immediate and severe! The bitch started to scream into her gag and thrash around like she was having a seizure!  Her eyes were closed and the pain was more intense than anything she had ever experienced. It felt like her cunt was on fire, being kicked severely, and yanked off violently all at the same time. Now only was she feeling all this pain but she was feeling it at ten times what the normal pain level would be.


Sarah winked at Jenny and said: “Come on Jenny, you want something to eat?”


Jenny (Smiling): “I would love something to eat. Maybe you could volunteer yourself?”


Sarah (Smiling back): “I would love to help out.”


Sarah walked over to the couch where the bitch could see and sat down and spread her legs. Jenny immediately got down on her knees and started to lick Sarahs pussy, gently at first. Sarah leaned back and began to lose herself in Jennys attentions. Jenny slowly licked harder and faster until Sarah started to get close. Then she slowed back down to keep Sarah from Cumming too quickly. Jenny moved her tongue up to Sarahs clit and licked her faster and harder again. Sarah began to hump along with Jennys rhythm but Jenny just kept moving with her so her humping didnt do anything to help. Jenny then covered Sarahs clit with her mouth and started to suck hard and at the same time, shoved her tongue up her pussy. Sarah began to moan in pleasure as Jenny sucked and tongued Sarah even faster. Suddenly Sarah was Cumming, while moaning and shacking in pleasure! Jenny licked up all her juices as they were flowing out of Sarahs pussy. Jenny loved the taste of her new lover.

All the while, the bitch was still hanging there, shaking violently in pain!


Sarah: “Honey, Do you think I could have a little snack too? I am hungry too.”


Jenny pulled herself up and sat down next to Sarah and kissed her a long and passionate kiss and then said: “Yes. I would not even think of depriving you of your snack. I want to thank you. You taste absolutely wonderful.”


They switched positions and Sarah began to lick Jennys pussy like she did her own except Sarah is much more skilled at it than Jenny. Like Sarah, Jenny began to hump her hips to get more tongue in her but Sarah would never allow such an easy cum. Sarah took Jenny to the edge three times before she let her cum. Jenny yelled and shook even more violently than Sarah did. Sarah had to grab her hips and legs to keep Jenny from “flying” away from her.

When they both settled down, Sarah Said, “Jenny, You are the best tasting snack that I ever had! I would appreciate more chances to lick your wonderful pussy. I have NEVER tasted anything so good in my life!”


Jenny Answered: “I dont know, I think you are the most wonderful tasting woman in the world. Maybe we should conduct more research to find out.”


They both laughed and kissed each other for a few minutes. All this time the bitch was shaking and cycling between becoming unconscious and full consciousness. She would never black out. Every time she started to, the pain would lessen until she started to recover, then it came back in FULL FORCE. It was endless torment with no relief!

Sarah went over to her and said, “Pain off”. Like before the effect was immediate. The pain left as quickly as it started without ANY residual pain. It was simply gone! The bitch looked up and glared at her.


Sarah: “Are you ready to sign these?”


Her arm and leg were getting sore but the bitch shook her head “no” anyway.


Sarah: “Fine. We are going back to your apartment to make sure we didnt miss anything. You “hang in there” until we return.”


As they walked out the door, Sarah said, “Pain on!” All they could hear as the door slammed was muffled screaming. Now the bitch was getting scared. This pain was going to continue for at least an hour, until they got back. This was the last reasoning thought she had before she fell back into a world with nothing but torturous pain. 

Jenny asked Sarah on the way there if they shouldnt just let her hang without the pain. Sarah told her that she didnt like it either but the bitch was being too defiant about it. She said that we need these papers signed. Jenny agreed but still hoped she wouldnt have to do this too much. Sarah was thinking the same thing. She knew firsthand what that pain felt like. She had to endure it herself when She was Jennys servant. She wasnt angry at Jenny now that she knew that it was the bitch that was using Jenny to entertain herself along with her friends. Jenny was a good person and never would have hurt Sarah like that.

When they got to the bitchs apartment, they looked around one last time to make sure that noting important was left behind. The place would have to be emptied and cleaned out but that was something for later. They left only about five minutes after they arrived. They both didnt want to leave the bitch like that too long.

They got home and found her hanging and shaking like before. She was like that for a little over an hour by the time they returned home. She had a puddle of sweat on the floor beneath her along with a puddle of piss. She had emptied her bladder too. Sarah told Jenny the bitch will clean that up. Sarah walked over to her and said, “Pain off”. The bitch immediately collapsed in her bonds and just hung there. Within a minute she looked up at Sarah and nodded her head, “yes”.

Sarah and Jenny lower her back to the floor and carried her to her little bed. She was still chained to a bolt in the floor because there was plenty of slack to tie her up and keep her leach on. Sarah took the ball gag off and the bitch didnt say anything at first. She jet lay there with her eyes closed, breathing heavy and still sweating. Sarah asked, “Will you sign now or do we continue? We can keep this up indefinitely, if that is your wish.” The bitch replied quietly, “I will sign them. Please keep the pain away. I cant take it anymore.”

It took a couple minutes for her to sign. She was still shaking am little bit. When she was finished with all of them, she said smugly, “It will do you no good. They have to be notarized too.” Sarah left the room and came back with a little bag and pulled out a notary stamp and waved it in her face. She said, “That is no problem, bitch. I can notarize things.” The bitch began yelling again, calling her names, while trying to grab the papers back. Sarah kicked her and quickly shoved the gag back in her mouth. She just stared at them and gave them the “finger”.  Jenny went over and punched her in the stomach. She told her that she was feeling sorry for her but it looked like some more punishments are in order. She told her that they would not ALL be the pain. There are larger things than pain to punish people with. The bitch only looked at her confused. She obviously didnt know what that meant. It seemed the bitch was not only uncooperative but not to “bright” either.

Sarah and Jenny went into the kitchen and discussed the next thing to do. Sarah immediately wrote out checks to pay off her credit cards and mailed everything in with the cancelation letters. She called the card companies to double check they would be canceled when they received the letters and the payments. She collected the other papers and told Jenny that they needed to go to the bank, then to the DMV.

The two of them left and told the bitch to clean up her mess on the floor. Sarah told her that if it wasnt clean, she would be punished even more and that pain could be continued indefinitely because there was no actual damage being done to her. She asked, “How am I supposed to clean it up with. I dont have any cleaning supplies.” Sarah said, “You figure it out but that floor better be clean when we get back!!” They took the paperwork and left. The bitch stared at the mess for an hour before she decided that it was in her best interest to clean it up but the only thing she could do is lick the floor. She was totally disgusted with doing that but was gaining a healthy respect for that pain and really didnt want to endure it any more. She crawled over to the two puddles and started to lick the floor. She almost gagged a couple times when she was licking her own piss but she finally got it all clean. She just lay in her bed waiting with a foul taste in her mouth. She kept thinking about everything that was being done right now. She will have NOTHING left after they cancel and clean out all her accounts. Even if she got free of them, what would she do and where would she go? She had no family and her friends would never help her. She had no REAL friends. They were just “fare-weather” friends and even now didnt care where she was or what she was doing. She just plopped down and waited.

Sarah and Jenny had been successful. They had canceled all her accounts at the bank and transferred the money to their own accounts. They had taken her drivers license to the DMV and turned it in to be canceled too. Next they drove to where her apartment was and paid off the rest of her lease and told the landlord that she would be out by the end of the mouth. They stopped at the grocery store and picked up some food for the bitch and her lover before they came back home.

It was over 4 hours later when they walked in the door and noticed that the floor was clean. Sarah said, “Thank you, bitch. I am glad you cleaned the floor. I have some good news for you. We got some food for you. I am sure you are hungry and thirsty by now.”  She just glared at them but was glad to get the taste out of her mouth. Sarah brought two bowls back in and set them on the floor by the bitch. One had water in it and the other had some dog food in it mixed with something else. The bitch said, “Whats this crap? Im not eating dog food. Give me some real food.”


Sarah: “Youd better eat up. Its all you are getting for now. Dont worry, there are some vitamins in there for you so you dont get sick or malnourished on us. If you were cooperating better, you would get better food but for now, thats all you get. If you dont like it, go hungry. Dont think about a hunger strike, either. We can have you feed with a needle if need be but you would be better eating real food.”

Bitch: “You cant do this! Its inhumane! Someday I will get out of here and when I do, you two will be in big trouble!”


Sarah (laughing): “I am not worried about that either. Like I said earlier, no one will believe you and now theres one more little problem for you. You are now a “non-person”. You dont exist anymore. You have NO identification, NO bank accounts, No credit cards, and No drivers license and NO apartment anymore and I already have a buyer for your car. It will be gone tomorrow. I am in the process of deleting you from several government records too. The government records are more difficult but after I am finished, you will never have existed at all! I would suggest you be good or we WILL let you go and you can walk the streets or work in a whorehouse for all I care.”


Bitch: “You are fucking bitches! You cant just erase me from existence! What will I do when you let me go?”


Sarah: “If you keep calling me names and dont start cooperating, you will NEVER leave here! I suggest you start behaving! REAL QUICK!!” 



The bitch slowly picked at the food but soon started eating it. She was very hungry and it didnt really taste that bad. It also got the piss taste out of her mouth. After she ate and drank a little water, she lay down on her little bed. She was bored but at least they let Rex Lose for her to talk to. Sarah and Jenny were in the kitchen talking about the bitch and what to do next about her attitude, when they heard her yell from the other room.


Bitch: “Hey! Hey you two! I need to go to the bathroom!! AM I suppose to go on the floor??!!” You can at least let me lose long enough to use the bathroom!”


Jenney smiled at Sarah and told her she would love to take care of this. Sarah smiled and said, “Be my guest.” Jenny went into the living room and explained things to the bitch.


Jenny: “Here is another new lesson for you, bitch. From now on you will ask politely to go outside. You will be let out in the back yard where you will do whatever you need to. After you clean everything and yourself all up, you may be let back in. I will take you out the first time to show you exactly what to do but then you are on your own out there. If you do not clean up properly, you will be punished. Lets go.”


Jenny unlocked the chain form the floor and led the bitch out back by her leash. As soon as they got out back, the bitch made a run for it but Sarah had warned Jenny and she was ready for the escape attempt. Jenny dug her heals in and yanked on the leash with all her strength. The bitch was not only stopped, she was “Clothes-lined” and fell flat on her back and was dazed for a few minutes. Jenny went over to the garden hose and sprayed water in her face and woke her up rather suddenly.


Jenny: “Now that weve established this, there will be a new rule along with it. You will have to be escorted outside at all times. We would really not want to watch you piss and shit but you leave us no choice. Now GO!..........assuming you really have to, that is.”


The bitch (With a raspy voice): “Yes I really do have to go. Please can you at least turn your back?”

Jenny: “HELL NO! GO! Besides, you are outside for all to see anyway. Whats one more person?”


The bitch got a worried look on her face. She hadnt thought about that but she really had to go so she squatted down and pissed and shit at the same time. When she was finished, she looked up at Jenny and told her she was done. Jenny laughed and said, “Youre not done, yet. You need to clean up now. We dont want your shit all over the back yard.” The bitch just looked at her confused. Jenny went and got the shovel and told her to put it all on the shovel and then to dump it behind the garage.


Bitch: “How am I supposed to get it on the shovel?”


Jenny: “You figure it out but hurry up. I have better things to do than to wait for you to empty yourself. HURRY UP!”


The bitch just looked at her pile of shit for a minute and then suddenly figured it out. She looked up at Jenny with a pleading look and was about to say something when Jenny said, “I see youve figured it out. Now hurry! If I have to wait much longer you punishments will start getting even longer than they are now!” She pushed and picked up all her shit onto the shovel and Jenny led her out back to show her where to dump it. As they were about to go back into the house, jenny suddenly yanked on her leash to stop her and said, “Youre NOT going in our house like that! Now you are full of shit. I will help you this first time but from now on you will clean YOURSELF up.”

Jenny got her down on all “fours” and told her to spread her arms and legs out. When she was ready, Jenny proceeded to use the garden hose to rinse her all off. At first she yelped at the cold but soon was almost glad to be washed off. She was still dirty from all the sweating and pissing on herself from earlier. When Jenny finished, the bitch said meekly, “Thanks.” You look clean now. Whenever you need to go out, just let us know. From now on, you can clean things up by yourself. This is what Sarah had to put up with at your suggestion, so now you are living with it. Lets go back inside.

Jenny locked her back up to the floor bolt and went back into the kitchen.


Jenny (to Sarah): “Everything went ok. I hosed her off with the garden hose. She yelped a little. She doesnt like the cold water, though. (Giggles) She actually said “Thanks” and it was in a tone of voice that you would expect, not the nasty voice that she has been using at us.”


Sarah: “Dont be too quick to think shes changing. It will take a lot longer. I am not being nasty at her to get even but someone like that will not change THAT quickly. She either wants something or is hoping we will relax so she can get free. Keep watching her close. Dont let your “guard” down for a second.”


Jenny: “I see what you mean. You are right. I will watch her. Can you really get into the government website and erase her? I dont want us to get into trouble.”


Sarah: “I doubt it but I will keep checking. Without any ID, she would not get far. She has no money, either. She doesnt even have an address. Like I told her, she is pretty much a non-person at this point. Dont worry. I am keeping on top of it. I am looking into any hospital records too, in case she went to one and they have any information on her. I will have to get rid of it too.”


Jenny went into the living room and gave her fresh water. The bitch just stared at her. When Jenny turned to walk away, the bitch kicked her water all over the floor. Jenny turned on her and kicked her in the stomach. She went down to the floor all curled up with the wind knocked out of her.

Jenny: “The more you do stuff like this the worse it will get. If it were up to me, I would lock you up in our storage room in the basement and you would never see the light of day again. I was cruel to Sarah at your suggestions. You were my friend and all you wanted from me is to use Sarah for your own pleasure and social advancements in your little world of snobs. Sarah is the one that is trying to teach you to be a better person. I just want you to experience everything that she did and MORE! Thats what you really deserve, NOT any sympathy or guidance!! Now clean up that water mess. Have fun the rest of today without water!”


Jenny took the water and food dish into the kitchen. Sarah asked, “What was that all about?” Jenny told her what happened and Sarah sighed and said that it will take a while and Jenny should not get too frustrated with things. She said, “The bitch is too shallow minded and self centered to change fast. She was brought up to believe that she was the center of the universe. She must be taught that she isnt and that there are people in this world that are better than she is. In fact, ALL people are better than she is right now!” They both laughed at that. They were right. The only friend she had right now was Rex and even he was higher on the food chain than she was. Sarah went to talk to the bitch.


Sarah: “Bitch, Stop wasting our time. IF you dont start behaving REAL fast, you WILL regret it.  If Rex wants to fuck you, you will allow it anytime he wants you. If I ever see you refuse him you will be punished so that pain is a sunny walk in the park compared to what I will do to you!”


Bitch: “What can you do about it? How can anything be worse than that pain? I wont let him fuck me! Its disgusting!”


Sarah (Signing): “I can see you are going to become a lot of work. Enjoy this little bit of free time right now. Your punishment will start in about an hour.”


Bitch: “SO WHAT! You two will see what happens when I get out of here! You will see how gets PUNISHED!!”


Sarah just walked away. She told Jenny to go get that box out of the trunk of their car. Jenny walked back into the house with the box and asked what was in it. Sarah told her that it was a last resort for the bitch but she is giving us no choice. Sarah pointed out which straps and chains to get and told her to take them into the bathroom upstairs. When she came back down, they unlocked the bitch form the bolt in the floor and dragged her upstairs into the bathroom. Jenny held her while Sarah trusted her up like a pig to the slaughter. Her wrists and ankles where chained together behind her back and she was laying sideways in the bathtub. Sarah told Jenny to put the ball gag in her mouth and to fill the tub with water. She left it up to Jenny how warm it would be. Sarah told her the temperature didnt matter. She filled it with cold water, of course. The bitch just whined, snorted  and lay in the tube shivering.


Sarah: “Dont worry, it will get hot in there REAL soon.”


Jenny: “What are you doing? What is all that?”


Sarah: “This is a little something I thought I wouldnt need. It produces a different type of pain and causes no marks. I have taken the electricity from the wall outlet and stepped up the voltage but reduced the current way down so it wont kill her but it will be VERY painful!”


Sarah had a plug going into a black box with a switch and a dial on it and wires coming out the other side. Sarah tied the ends of the wires onto weights and put them into the tub, then plugged in the other end to an outlet. Sarah looked at the bitch and told her that this was part of the punishment she had coming already. She told her that it didnt matter how much she whined and begged. She was getting this anyway.

Sarah plugged the unit in while Jenny just watched. Sarah told the bitch that she was getting this because her behavior and that this was only part of her punishment.

Sarah turned the switch on with the dial turned all the way down. The bitch just shouted into the gag and jerked around for about two minutes before Sarah turned it off. The bitch now realized what was happening and looked at them with fear in her eyes but was unharmed. Sarah turned the dial up a little and hit the switch again. The bitch yelled into the gag and was jerking around again but it seemed to be worse for her.


Jenny: “Wont this electrocute her?”


Sarah: “No. The current is too low but the voltage is high enough to cause her a lot of pain.”


Jenny: “Why dont we just use the hypnotism pain? It would be easier, wouldnt it?”


Sarah: “Yes but this way she knows that there is a lot of different types of pain out there. There is even pain that doesnt hurt. You should know that better than anyone, Jenny?


Jenny (Tearing a little): “Yes. I know exactly what you mean.”


Jenny leaned down and hugged Sarah for a few seconds, then sat back down to watch. Sarah moved the dial up a little more and hit the switch. The bitch began to thrash around even more. She was screaming into her gag and almost slipped down under the water just as Sarah turn it off. Sarah told Jenny to go get one of the smaller straps. When she got back Sarah attached one end to the bitchs collar and the other to the faucet so her head wouldnt slip under the water. The strap was made of a heavy fibrous materiel (Similar to a seat belt) and would not conduct electricity. The bitch looked up at Sarah and shook her head “no” with a fearful look in her eyes. Sarah said to her, “I told you that you would be punished. You will have more punishments after this for all the troubles you have caused so far. This is ALL for your own good. Now stop whining and well get done that much faster.”

Sarah turned the knob a little higher and turned the unit on once more. The bitch flopped and thrashed around like a fish out of water. Sarah continued the power for about 2 minutes before she turned it off. The bitch was now only semi-conscious and almost hanging by her collar. Sarah unplugged the unit and pulled the wires out of the tub. Her and Jenny unstrapped and unchained the bitch and pulled her out of the tub. When they took the gag out she just flopped on the floor all wet and groaned. Sarah and Jenny dried her off and helped her downstairs where they reattached her to her leash. They laid her on her bed and covered her with a little blanket. Rex came over to her and lay against her with his head on her legs and slept. She just looked up at Sarah and Jenny and fell asleep curled up in her blanket.

It was a long day and Sarah and Jenny went to bed. Jenny gave Sarah a beautiful back rub before they went to sleep. They curled up together and fell asleep. Just as Jenny was almost asleep, she felt a tongue going down her stomach onto her pussy. She groaned and spread her legs. She could tell by the touch that it was Sarah. She would always remember that touch and that wonderful tongue of hers. Sarah gently and slowly licked up her pussy. It almost felt as if she didnt want to wake Jenny and that she wanted her to float away on a cloud in a dream. Jenny would tell Sarah about her thoughts in the morning but for now she just lay back and let Sarah lead her into that wonderful world of love and lust. Sarah didnt hesitate too long this time but kept her licking steady and soft. For Jenny, it was a slow and steady rise to the “top”. Jenny started to hump and groan in lust but Sarah just kept her licking in rhythm with Jennys humping so it did no good for her. Sarah knew exactly what she was doing. For Jenny it was so slow and the steadiness of it was frustratingly wonderful! Finally, Jenny began to thrash in the pleasure of an orgasm given by someone that was the most beautiful woman in the world. Sarah felt Jennys orgasm building and kept her licking steady and slow but not hesitating at all. When Jenny collapsed in the after joy of Cumming, Sarah crawled out and they kissed that passionate kiss they both always needed. Jenny could taste herself in Sarahs kiss. Jenny wanted so much to lick Sarahs pussy. Jenny was now as addicted to Sarah as Sarah was to Jenny. Sarah pulled her back up and told her to wait until tomorrow and she pulled her back up and into a hug that they would fall asleep in. They slept.

The next morning, Jenny awoke first and kissed Sarah awake. She still tasted herself in that kiss. That taste made her mad with lust. She wanted to lick Sarah so very bad. She ducked down under the covers and began to lick and suck on Sarahs nipples and tits. Sarah tried to tell her to wait but Jenny pushed her hands back and told Sarah that she owed her one. She was cheated out of this last night. Sarah said, “You are right honey. I am sorry. I know what it is like to be denied the pleasure of touching and being responsible for making you cum. I will never do that to you again. I am sorry for last night.” Jenny told her to relax and to not give it another thought. Then she continued down Sarahs stomach and licked and kissed her way down to what she wanted. She wanted to shove her tongue into Sarahs pussy to lick her dry! She wanted to taste and swallow all her juices while making her scream with lust and pleasure. She wanted this and more. Jenny had her mouth sealed over Sarahs clit and was shoving her tongue into her pussy. She worked her tongue as fast as she could while creating a vacuum seal on her clit and sucking as hard a she could. Sarah couldnt take it any longer. She grabbed Jennys head and pulled her in tight. It was not necessary. Jenny was in as tight as she could get. She didnt want to lose out on any of Sarahs pussy juices. Sarah was Cumming with such violence that she grabbed Jenny with her thighs at the same time. Jenny could not breathe but she would never give up. She would pass out before she would give up on Sarah. Just as Jenny thought she might pass out, Sarahs was jerking and yelling were starting to calm down so Jenny caught a quick breath but kept licking and sucking. Jenny was not finished. She was determined to give Sarah even more. Her determination and now skillful pussy licking was bringing Sarah up the hill for another “ride” on Jennys tongue. Sarah began all over again. She was pulling Jennys head so hard Jenny thought she might end up all the way inside Sarah. Jenny thought to herself, I will do whatever it takes and whatever she needs. Sarah started screaming again, “OH GOD! LICK JENNY, LICK HARDER! AHHHHHHHHHHHH!” Sarah shook and flopped on the bed lick she was having a seizure. When Sarah calmed down Jenny pulled her mouth off Sarahs pussy and crawled up to her face and kissed her with one long passionate kiss. Jenny had so much of Sarahs juices on her face; she was dripping along Sarahs stomach and onto her tits. There kiss was lubed well with juices from Sarah. They took a long shower together and paid a lot of attention to detail. They decided that there pussys required extra attention. They dried each other off and gave each other one last hug before going down stairs. Jenny told Sarah that she wanted to do one thing before the bitch did anything. Jenny has always felt bed now looking back and denying this to Sarah. It was truly her own fault but the bitch was responsible too. She owed Sarah. She owed her a lot and would never be able to make it up to her.

They both walked downstairs and when the bitch saw them she said, “I need to use the bathroom. Unlock me.” Jenny told her that if she didnt start asking nicely she would not be able to go out. Jenny told her to lie on her back and open her mouth. The bitch did so slowly. She was sure why she was told to. Jenny came over to her and started to squat over her face when suddenly the bitch pushed away and told her she wasnt going to do that. Jenny balled up her fist and hit her as hard as she could in the stomach. The air rushed out of the bitch like a bellows. As she was coughing and gagging, Jenny told her she better do as shes told and she better start being a little nicer or her stay was going to get even worse. Jenny said, “Now LAY down you fucking bitch! You had better drink it all and clean me up or you will be in pain for a couple of hours, this time!”

The bitch lay down slowly but Jenny could tell she didnt like it. Jenny squatted over her face again and pissed into her mouth. Jenny had a lot. Her bladder was full. The bitch chocked a like and spilled some on the floor but tried to get it all. Jenny ordered her to clean her up. She did so slowly at first but seemed to try a little harder to get it right this time. Jenny got up and saw she spilled some on the floor and ordered her to lick it up and make sure the floor was good and clean. The bitch cleaned it up pretty good and said, “Let me go to the bathroom now, or I will make a mess on the floor.” Jenny laughed and told her that if she did, Jenny would come up with an entirely NEW punishment for her. She told her she was angry with her for using her and deceiving her.


Jenny: “If you ask nicely as you should, I will let you outside.”


Bitch: “Outside??! I cant go outside! Let me use the bathroom.”


Jenny: “Not until you ask nicely like you should. Now ASK NICELY!”


Bitch: “Can I go to the bathroom?”


Jenny: “And how do we ask?”


Bitch: “PLEASE, May I go to the bathroom?”


Jenny unlocked the chain form the floor and led her outside. She locked the chain onto a tree which allowed the bitch to reach to the back of the garage to dump her mess but it would not let her get away. Jenny then told her that when she wanted to come back in, she should tap on the door lightly, ONCE and wait until they let her in. If she taped more than once or knocked, she would stay outside the rest of the day and all night. Jenny then went inside.

The bitch just glared at her and walked toward the grass and squatted down and pissed. She hesitated to make sure she didnt have to shit. She was becoming afraid of what would happen if she shit on the floor. A few minutes later she squatted again and shit on the grass. She went over to the shovel and started to swear and complain at how disgusting this was but still pushed her shit onto the shovel and carried it behind the garage. After she dumped it she went back to the hose and washed herself off. It felt good and she was able to get a drink too.

Sarah and Jenny were watching from the house to make sure she didnt do anything stupid.


Sarah: “Jenny, why are you doing all the same things you did to me?”


Jenny: “These are all the things she suggested. I want her to fell the consequences of her suggestions. Maybe it will give her an idea of what it means to be cruel to someone. Besides, I have some ideas of my own too, in case she needs more training.”


Sarah: “It sounds like you are doing the right thing. Keep it up. She seems to be a slow learner and is very stubborn. We have a long way to go, yet.”


Jenny: “GOOD!”


They heard the bitchs tap on the door and waited to let her in. They wanted to be sure she would obey, this time. Her punishments were adding up and they needed to give her more. They watched her and waited over ½ hour. She was just sitting up against the door trying to hide from anyone that might see her. The chain was near the end but still long enough to let her near the door. Sarah and Jenny were going to wait for 2 hours before they let her in. After an hour, the bitch tapped again.

Sarah and Jenny looked at each other and Jenny went to the door and opened it. She kicked the bitch and said, “You cant seem to fallow even the simplest of orders! Rex is smarter than you!” They brought her in and Sarah asked Jenny what she wanted to do to her for tapping twice. Jenny told Sarah that the bitch would experience pain while her and Sarah went and had lunch. The bitch was strapped to the chair that Sarah used. She was strapped; legs spread wide and cunt wide open. The chair was put into the closet facing inside with the ball gag in her mouth.

Jenny and Sarah got dressed in some sexy clothing. They had no underwear on of any kind and their pants wear tight with the waist low. Their shirts were high on their chests and loose. They still enjoyed teasing younger boys and boys like that were turned on VERY easily. ON the way out, Jenny said to the bitch, “PAIN ON!” Once again, the effect was immediate. The bitch started to yell into the gag and shake and jerk. The pain had started once again. Jenny laughed and told her to have fun and they would be back in an hour or so. The bitch just yelled and shook her head no as the door was closed on her.

Sarah and Jenny drove away to a nearby restaurant to eat and tease boys if they found any. They went in the door and looked around. They got lucky again. There were two boys sitting together in a booth. They appeared to be about 15-16 years old. It was perfect. They walked up them and asked if they could sit with them. They just stared at them for a few seconds and stammered, “Yes”.

They sat down each on one side with the boys on the inside.


Sarah: “Is there anything good to eat here? We both like hard long sausages or nice big meatballs. They are our favorites.”


Jenny said to Sarah: “What about a nice big piece of meat. Steak, maybe?”



Sarah: “Lets ask these two. Maybe they can help us. Do you two boys know if they have any nice large sausages and meatballs here?”


The effect on these two boys was predictable. They just stared at Jenny and Sarah. Sarah noticed their cocks were now nice and hard. She guessed they were leaking and oozing precum, too.

She reached down and rubbed the boys cock by her. He face went blank and he just whimpered a little. Jenny took Sarahs lead and began to rub the other boys cock. It was hard, also. The two of them were just sitting there and softly moaning. Sarah whispered in his ear, “Touch me”. The boy shuddered. He obviously didnt know what to do. Sarah looked a Jenny and winked. She grabbed his hand and put it on her tits and whispered for him to rub them. Sarah giggled. He was shaking, moaning and was feeling her tit like it was going to bite his hand off but he didnt take it down. He closed his eyes and moaned.

Jenny on the other hand was not going to be outdone by Sarah. She winked at her and pulled her boys hand to her pussy under the belt of her pants, which was now open. As his hand touched her pussy he shuddered, stiffened up and shot his load all over his shirt and pants. HE lay his head back with his eyes closed and went limp while Jenny milked the rest of his cum out on his pants. She leaned over and kissed him while wiping then cum from her hand onto his shirt.

Sarah smiled at Jenny and leaned over and told the boy by her to twist on her nipple. She told him it feels so good when he does that. He lightly pinched and twisted it but not very hard at all. Sarah normally would have been disappointed but teasing these two horny teens was why they were there. She began to stroke his cock a little harder. It wasnt long for him either. As he shot his load, Sarah made sure it landed all over his pants and shirt, like the other boy. She leaned over and kissed her boy too while wiping her hand on his shirt like Jenny did. They thanked them both for a wonderful time and left.

There they were. The two of them were sitting there, cocks hanging out with cum all over their pants and shirts. They didnt seem to mind or even notice at first. They just leaned back with their eyes closed breathing heavy.

Sarah and Jenny didnt leave the restaurant, though. They had moved to a both to watch their two new “friends” to see what they would do when they realized they had cum all over them. This was why Sarah enjoyed this and Jenny was now realizing that she liked it also.

The two boys looked down at the same time, and then looked at each other with a frightened look on their faces. They pulled their pants up and took napkins and tried to wipe themselves off. Sarah and Jenny were laughing now. They knew the two boys would only make the stains worse. It took a minute for them to figure it out. They looked around and ran out trying to hide their stains with their hands. It only made people look closer to see what they were doing. As they ran past, Sarah and Jenny said, “Well be back tomorrow boys. It was fun.” They just ran out. Sarah and Jenny started to laugh all over again. After they left the two girls ordered a nice lunch and when they finished, they decided to go home to see if the bitch had learned anything, yet. Jenny wanted to leave her in that dark pain all afternoon but Sarah reminded her that the pain would stop after two hours anyway. Jenny growled and said, “We can start it over again and go shopping.” Sarah said, “Sounds like a good idea but we better check on her anyway.”

They both wanted the bitch to stay in that closet all afternoon in pain but Sarah knew they needed to check on her. They went home and decided to put on even skimpier clothing. Jenny had never realized how fun it was to tease others. She stated to enjoy herself and was coming up with new ideas.


They pulled in the driveway to check on the bitch………











Cindys Lessons    PART 3


Sarah and Jenny had just pulled in the driveway at home to check on the bitch. They opened the closet and the bitch was inside breathing heavy and snorting once in a while. Sarah said, “Pain off”. The bitchs head slumped down and she passed out. They pulled the chair out and unstrapped her, took the gag out and chained her back up with her collar on. She plopped down to the floor on her bed, unconscious.

Jenny: “This isnt any fun. How can we punish her if shes passed out?”

Sarah: “Well have to wait until she wakes and see how much shell cooperate, now.”

Jenny: “I still want her to feel the pain that she has caused others. I am sure there are others besides you.”

Sarah: “Probably so but she has to learn and it will take a while. She is stubborn and dimwitted.”

They went and got her some water and food in her bowls and went up stairs to put some skimpier clothes on. Sarah was wearing the skirt and top she had used before. The skirt barely covered her ass and the top was just at the bottom of her tits. She wore no bra or underwear. She helped Jenny find and modify some clothes for her too. Jenny was looking forward to going out dressed like that. Sarah knew how she felt. They both enjoyed the stares and the teasing.

BY the time they came down, the bitch was stirring a little bit while Rex was pocking his nose in her face a little bit. She pushed him away and started to wake up. When she awoke, she jerked and let out a raspy gasp. Her voice was completely gone from screaming into her gag for the last two hours. She looked up and saw Jenny and Sarah and gave them a dirty look and glared at them.


Jenny saw it and said, “I can see you are not a smart person. All you need to do is cooperate a little without being disrespectful.”.


Sarah said: “Jenny, be patient. The bitch was a dimwitted person. She had gone through her life with an attitude that she thinks will take her through life easily. She is wrong. Shes been influenced by the wrong people and we have a lot of work to do with her.”


They chained her wrists, ankles and knees to the bolts in the floor. Her ass, cunt and mouth were completely accessible and she could not do anything about it. The bitch tried to fight her but there was no way she could do anything about it. Sarah had twice her strength and was not in the mood for her bull shit. They then attached a strap to the ceiling and wrapped it around her waist and another one under her armpits so she couldnt lay or fall down. They attached the head strap and tied it to the ceiling in a slightly face up position so her mouth could be assessable too. Jenny laughed at her position. There she was, locked into this “doggie” style position and was chained, strapped and locked there until either her or Sarah let her lose.

Sarah said, “You will be here until we return. Mike should be home soon and I hope he brings Rob with him. Rob is a horny dog likes to fuck anything he can. He is not a gentle person, either. Besides, maybe Rex will keep you company. You have been chained down so he can reach you too. You ARE HIS bitch, after all. We have other things to do and we cant spend all day punishing you. Your punishments are adding up and they will contain much more than just pain. There are other things too. If you dont start behaving, everything will get MUCH WORSE! We will be kind to you just to show good faith on our part. You may cum as much as you wish, today but only when Rex is fucking you and NO ONE else!”

Sarah told Jenny to take the leather strap and whip her ass so she has something to think about. She told Jenny not to whip her cunt today. Sarah had other things for her and didnt want her cunt all red and sore, YET! Jenny grabbed the strap and swung as hard as she could on the bitchs ass. There was a loud crack! The bitch started jerking to get away but it was impossible. She screamed and now quiet and horse scream. She had no voice left because of screaming steady for almost two hours over lunch. There was another swing and a loud crack with more of her “horse” screaming. Jenny told the bitch that she was enjoying this very much and she will definitely get more of this. She told her that next time she will get the strap on her cunt too but that for now, Sarah seemed to have something in mind. After about 30 hits on the ass with the strap, the bitch wasnt even screaming anymore. She was just laying limp and crying.

Sarah came back and saw Jenny just as she was swinging the strap right on her tits. She let Jenny have her fun for about 10 more hits. The bitchs ass and tits were all red and almost bleeding. Sarah asked her if she was finished. Jenny put the strap down and told her she was finished, FOR NOW! Jenny said, “This is hard work, beating her with the strap!” Sarah laughed and wrote with permanent marker on the bitchs back, “FREE FUCK and BLOWJOB.”  She told Jenny she wanted to leave for the store to have some fun. Jenny went over and squeezed and twisted the bitchs nipples as hard as she could, then grabbed Sarahs hand and said, “Lets go. She is bringing me down and I want to have some fun, too.”

They walked away, leaving the bitch screaming that “horse and somewhat quiet” scream. Jenny laughed and said before they left, “Dont worry; Mike will be home soon to entertain you. He should like to fuck you too, as well as anyone else that is with him. If we hear that you didnt cooperate, you punishments will continue. You might as well start behaving. It will go much better for you but then, I DO enjoy causing you pain. NO amount of pain you endure will make up for what you did!” The two of them left for the store to have some fun. On the way out, Sarah called Mike and told him to make sure he brings some friends home and that they left a surprise at home for him. Mike guessed what it was and told her that he appreciated the two of them thinking of him.



Authors note: The next two things happen at the same time but will be told in two separate parts.



MIKE COMES HOME:


It was about ½ hour after the girls left that Mike came home with Rob and two others guys. There was Mike, Rob, Jimmy, and Bret. They walked in and Mike said, “See, I told you that my mother is always thinking of her children. She leaves us presents all the time. Rob told Jim and Bret that every time he comes here, it is like this and that we should start charging for admittance into this house. They all Laughed at that. Rob went over to the bitch and noticed her ass and tits were all red and her ass was bleeding a little bit.


Rob slapped her on the ass and said: “Youve been naughty, havent you?”


The Bitch flinched at the slap and begged in a gasping horse voice: “Please, let me down. PLEASE? They keep doing this to me. They captured me and have been doing these things to me. I want to go home. I have money. I can pay you if you release me.”


Mike (laughing): “You have to be kidding. I have always liked to get a free fuck and it seems that you are the lucky one today. Besides, you seem to be all locked up and none of us has the keys. We dont care, though. You are in a good position anyway. I think you will like this. We promise we will make you cum. If we cant we will keep trying until you do.”


Rob: “Thats right. If you dont cum, I will take it personally. I have NEVER failed to make anyone cum before and you will not break my record!”


Jim and Bret were already stripping and both had huge hard-ons. They were practically drooling. They were coming over to her and starting to grab and fondle her by the time Rob finished talking to her. Rob stepped back and Mike and he were stripping also while Bret and Jim started to fuck her. Bret rammed his cock into her cunt and when she tried to plead with them to stop, all that she could get out was a faint raspy gasp before Jim grabbed her head and shoved his cock into her mouth. The bitch was chained and locked down and there was nothing she could do. The two of them fucked her cunt and mouth like two mad dogs. Bret leaned down and grabbed her tits and pulled on them for leverage while hid cock was being rammed into her cunt. Jim had her head in his hands like a drowning man grabs a life preserver. Like Bret, he was ramming his cock down her throat. All the bitch could do is try to get a quick gasp on air whenever she could. It was not easy. Jim did not give her much chance. He had his cock down her throat and held it there. Her thrashing and gasping felt good on his cock. She was also in great pain. Her bleeding ass was being rammed and scratched while Bret was fucking her. They both took turns pulling and twisting her sore and red tits.

The two of them eventually got into a rhythm. Just as the two of them started to cum, the bitch rolled her eyes back and started to pass out. Jim filled her throat with cum while Bret was filling her cunt. They both pulled out together as the bitch suddenly went limp. She instinctively took a large deep breath. She inhaled a good part of Jims cum and started to cough and gag. Cum was flying out of her mouth and out of her nose. When the couching stopped, she had cum dripping from her mouth and from her nose. While Jim was wiping his cock on her hair, she started begging for food and water. Jim laughed and said, “Next time, bitch, dont spit out your food. Swallow it. Maybe Mike or Rob will give you some more. Dont waist it.”

The bitch tried to lick up what was dripping out of her mouth. She lifted her head up and began to lick up what was dripping out of her nose. She was truly thirsty and hadnt had anything to eat or drink in a while. Even their cum tasted good. She found herself begging for more.

Mike and Rob were next. Mike went up to her mouth and rammed his cock down her throat. Rob got behind her and saw the cum dripping out of her cunt and said, “Im not fucking her cunt with Brets cum dripping out.” Rob shoved his cock into her ass. The bitch felt pain for moment. She has never had anything in her ass before. She let out a wheezing exhale of breath. Her voice was gone and Mikes cock was down her throat. She had no choice but to endure the pain of Robs cock in her virgin ass. Just as before, she couldnt breathe while Mike was fucking her in the mouth. 


Rob: “Her ass is so damn tight. I bet shes and ass virgin. When were done and her mouth isnt full, I will ask her but its impolite to talk with your mouth full.”


They all laughed at that one. The bitch did not pay any attention to what they were saying. Her only thought was her next breath. If she could have she would be screaming but her mouth was full of Mikes cock. Even if it wasnt, she had no voice left to scream with. Rob told Mike to hurry up. He wanted her mouth free for his load since she was so hungry and thirsty. Just as Mike started to cum, he rammed his cock all the way in, like Jim did and held it there until his entire load went down her throat. She was losing consciousness just as he pulled out. Like before, she started couching and gasping for air but this time, mikes load went all the way down and she had nothing to couch up. Rob quickly pulled out and ran to her mouth and shoved his cock down her throat to empty his load too. She barely got to breaths when Robs cock went down her throat and cut her air supply off again. Robs cock was large and long. He had a big load and held his cock in for a long time. The bitch was unconscious and not breathing by the time he pulled out. Jim said, “The bitch isnt breathing, guys.” Bret had some First aid training and went over to her and kicked her in the stomach. His kick did the trick. There was a large exhale and some coughing while she started to breathe again. Mike went and got a cup and scraped the cum that was leaking out of her ass and told her to drink it, since she was so hungry and thirsty. She was dazed and drank without caring. She didnt like the taste but was thirsty and hungry and lapped it down like it was some kind of “golden elixir”.


Rob: “She seems to like the taste of cum. Why dont we get a beer and start round two in a little while.”


Jim: “Sounds good.”


The four of them went and got some beers and sat down to watch the bitch struggle. She wasnt moving much, and they lost interest. They turned on the TV to watch some football. All the time they werent paying any attention to Rex. He was lying in the corner sleeping. Rex awoke and came over to the bitch and began to sniff around her. She moved only slightly when he licked her face. Not getting any response, he walked around to her ass and started to sniff around.

Mike noticed and told the others to watch. He said the girls had been using Rex to train her. They started to urge him on but it wasnt necessary. Rex got on her back and mounted her like any other bitch. Her cunt was well lubed for Bret cum and Rexs cock slid right in with no resistance. Rex began to hump her lick a piston. Rex had recognized his bitch from before. He was pumping and drooling on her back with his tongue hanging out. The bitch slowly started to respond. She started to hump back in rhythm with Rex.

The guys were laughing so hard they almost spit their beer out. Rob said, “Look! We thought she enjoyed us! Now we know why she was giving us such a hard time. She prefers to be fucked by a dog.” They started to laugh all over again while watching her being fucked by Rex. It didnt take long. Rexs cock was even bigger than Robs. Just as Rex let his load fill up her cunt, the bitch started to shake and gasp. She shook like she was having a seizure. Rex kept pumping for a good minute while she was shaking, trying to scream. Her “screams” sounded like a whispery gasp. Finally, Rex was finished. He got off her back and his cock plopped right out. Normally his Knot would have to come down but she was so widened out and lubed up, it slipped right out with a squishy plop. She hung limp in her chains and straps. She seemed content and tired.


Mike: “Rob, you have no reason to be mad at her for not Cumming. Now we know why. She likes to be fucked by dogs. If I am not mistaken, this is her dog and it looks like she is his bitch.”


Rob: “Youre right. I was going to give her a few more whips on her ass but maybe not. Then again, I will anyway for putting me through that. I was worried that my perfect record was shot to hell.”


Rob went and got the leather strap that Jenny had used before and began to use it on her ass. He swung as hard as he could. Rob was much stronger than Jenny and the “crack” could have been herd outside. The bitch started screaming that raspy scream that no one could hear. The cuts in her ass were bleeding all over and with each smack of the strap, there were new slices where blood was oozing from. Rob gave her ten good hits and there was starting to be a puddle of blood on the floor. ON the eighth hit, the bitch passed out and went limp. Blood and cum was running down her thighs onto the floor.

The guys decided she was done for the day and besides, she was Rexs bitch anyway and they didnt want to get between the two of them.  They all grabbed some beer and pissed on her on the way out. When the piss hit her ass, she awoke and started to scream. Her screams now were only a loud exhale. She had NO voice left.




Sarah and Jenny have fun:


Sarah and Jenny drive away and decide to go to the grocery store. Sarah told Jenny that they didnt need anything but that it would be a good place to have some fun. They were both dressed rather lightly. Sarah had on a skirt that went just below her ass and a top that barely covered her tits. If she reached up, her ass and tits would hang out for all to see. Jenny had a top on like Sarahs but she was wearing a pair of shorts that were cut so high that the only way to cover her pussy was to keep her legs tight together. If she didnt, the crotch of the shorts would disappear up into her pussy and it would look like she wasnt wearing anything to cover herself. They also rode up a lot if she reached up for something. Sarah also brought a few toys and supplies with them in case they needed to use them.

Jenny drove into the parking lot and Sarah was looking for the perfect spot. The lot was quiet except for a grocery boy collecting shopping carts. They pulled up near him and wanted to give him a nice full look but he wasnt paying any attention to them. Sarah told Jenny to hit the horn for a second to get his attention but Jenny said she had an idea. She smiled and told Sarah to watch and when he looks over here to give him a good show.

Jenny walked over to him and acted like she wanted a cart to use. He stared at her even though she was pretty much covered but just barely. She walked up to him and pointed down the street and asked him where the nearest restaurant was. Jenny lifted her arm high to point and pretended not to notice him staring at her tits, which were now clearly visible. While her hand was out, he just stammered something unintelligible. As he was staring at her she pretended to drop her keys and bent over right in front of him.

While he was getting a perfectly clear view of her pussy, she was bending over, slowly, to pick up her keys. He stammered something and was not only staring but getting a huge hard-on. Jenny stood up pointed at her mother and told him they were looking for a good place to eat. As he glanced over at the car, Sarah spread her legs wide and while pretending to pull her shirt down, Rubbed her pussy a couple of times. Jenny noticed his cock was now rock hard as he was staring at Sarah. Jenny reached down and started to rub his cock and said, “Take a good look at it. It tastes as good as it looks!” She was going to stop and walk away but he was like jelly in the palm of her hand. She started to stroke him harder through his pants while Sarah walked over to them. Sarah walked behind him and with Jenny in front, they hugged each other with him between them like a sandwich. Jenny and Sarah started to kiss and nibble his neck while Jenny was grinding her pussy on his cock. Jenny and Sarah pulled each other tighter and that pulled Jennys pussy into him even more. Jenny then gave him a big wet kiss on the mouth while Sarah kept nibbling his neck, rubbing his chest and telling him that she wanted his cock in her mouth. She kept telling him, she needed to swallow his cum because her doctor told her she needed to have a daily dose of cum. It didnt take long.

Soon he let out a big groan and almost collapsed in their arms. Just as he was beginning to stand on his own, they let go, grabbed the cart and started for the door to the store. As they walked away, Jenny said, “Thank you for the cart.  You have been a great help. We will always come to this store from now on.” The boy looked down at his pants and they all saw the BIG wet stain in his crotch. Sarah laughed and told him to be more careful and that when he washes his pants to put a little stain remover on it first. They walked away glancing back and laughing at the boy trying to wipe the stain off. They both knew that hed have that stain until he went home. Jenny told Sarah that she wanted to watch and see how his coworkers reacted to it. Sarah laughed some more and said, “I would like to watch them too. Maybe we could give him another “helping”.

They walked into the store with their cart looking for someone else to play with. As they walked in they got a lot of looks from everyone but they were enjoying it. Jenny even winked at an older guy near the entrance. He appeared to be in his 60s. He smiled and turned red and didnt know quite what to do. Jenny walked over to him and gently grabbed his head and gave him a long passionate kiss. He tensed up, and then relaxed. When she walked away, several people were staring at him but he didnt notice. He just stared at her ass as she walked away, hiding a large hard-on. When Jenny got back to Sarah, She smiled and said, “This is fun. I never guessed at how much fun we could have.”

We continued into the store and scoped the place out. It was moderately busy so we hoped that anything we did would not attract attention. There were a lot of employees stocking and doing other things. Sarah saw a girl price checking with one of those small scanners and told Jenny that they should play with her for a little bit. They both walked up beside her and were pretending to look at some items. She glanced at the two of them and stared at Sarah for a few seconds. Even to another girl, Sarah was incredibly beautiful. Sarah walked up to her and began to ask her some questions about prices, when Jenny gently moved her hand down the front of her pants. It was very easy. She had on uniform pants that were fairly loose. She jumped back and said, “Stop it!” Sarah grabbed her arm and held her there while Jenny slid her hand down her pants again and gently moved her fingers up and down her pussy. Sarah told her to enjoy it and that the two of them just wanted to play a little bit with her and then they would leave her alone.

She said, “Please. Im married and not gay. I will scream if you dont leave me alone.” Sarah told her that they will leave her alone if she let them continue for one minute. Sarah held on tight and it was just enough to scare her a little bit. She said, “OK, but just for a minute. We all will get into trouble and since I am not yelling for help, I will be in as much trouble as you two.” Jenny was moving her fingers up and down her pussy and noticed she was getting wet. She gently moved her finger into her pussy and used her thumb on her clit. The effect was predictable. She closed her eyes and “mewed” like a little kitten. Jenny was becoming an expert in women and the girl was literally in the palm of her hand. Sarah whispered in her ear that they will leave her alone as they promised. Sarah winked at Jenny and she pulled her hand out of the girls pants slowly and rubbing her fingers up her pussy on the way out. The girls eyes were still close and she was beginning to ride the wave of her own lust when Jenny stopped. She looked at Sarah, a little confused and at the same time there was a “begging” look on her face. Sarah told her they were sorry to have bothered her but were hoping to satisfy her completely.

Sarah said, “Were sorry to have bothered you. We only wanted to help.” As they started to walk away, the girl said, “Wait. Sarah smiled. She knew they had her “hooked”.


Sarah: “Yes?”


Girl: “What do you mean, “satisfy”?


Sarah: “We would both love to lick you dry until you cum as much as you want to. Please? Can we?”


Girl: “Why would you do this for a complete stranger”?


Sarah: “We know what its like to be married. Ill bet your husband cums in about 2 minutes, leaving you unsatisfied. We know what thats like and only want to give you the pleasure that you deserve.”


Girl: “I am not a lesbian but I would like that very much. I get off work in four hours if you want to return, then.”

Jenny: “Wed normally love to but we will be out of town for a few days and we have to leave soon.”

Sarah: “Can you take a break? We could use the bathroom, here. Think of it; you can finish your shift with a smile on your face.”

Girl: “OK. Meet me in the back of the store where it says “employee bathroom”. I will be there in 10 minutes.”

Sarah, “Well be there and thank you. We enjoy helping other girls like this. It shows them what their boyfriends or husbands SHOULD be doing. When you have two or three orgasms, you will know what to tell your husband.”

Girl: “See you in a few minutes.”


Both Sarah and Jenny watched her walk away. She was walking very strange. She was rubbing her thighs together the whole time. Jenny laughed and said, “I think Ive got her hooked. She was dripping wet when I stopped. She is horny as hell right now.” Sarah told Jenny that when they get into the bathroom, she should lick her, the best she knows how but SLOWLY. Sarah told her she had something to do while the girl was being satisfied.

They were waiting in back when the girl walked up to them. She told them to fallow her in the back. She led them into the “womans” bathroom. Sarah smiled. It was a single bathroom with a locking door. Jenny told her to get up on the counter next to the sink. When she sat up, Jenny unhook her pants and slowly slide them down. Sarah lifted her top off and began to message her tits and nipples. Jenny got down on her knees and moved in to start to “eat” her like a pro. Jenny gently spread her legs and slid her tongue up her pussy, which was now dripping wet. She lapped up all her juices and slid her tongue into her pussy while moving her upper lip up and down her clit. Sarah began to kiss and suck on her nipples. The girl was a blob of lustful flesh in their hands. She leaned back and began to breathe heavy. As she closed her eyes, Sarah tapped Jenny on the head and indicated for her to reach up and pinch and twist her nipples. As Jenny reached up, Sarah winked at her, quietly picked up her clothes and took them out of the bathroom and returned. She was only gone for a few seconds so the girl didnt notice. She had her eyes closed and was oblivious to anything around her. Jenny was becoming an expert in pussy licking and the girl was soon in the wave of a tremendous orgasm.


Girl: “OH GOD! OH GOD! IM CUMMING! LICK HARDER, HARDER!!!!!”


Jenny licked like a pro. The girl was Cumming in waves and waves of orgasms. It was clear that she was not used to having them. She would have fallen off the counter if Sarah had not caught her. Just as she started to relax, Jenny sped up her licking and the girl started another wave of orgasms. The girls juices were running all over the counter top. Sarah pulled her head close and gave her a passionate kiss. She didnt resist at all. She ran her tongue into Sarahs mouth while Jenny continued licking to clean her up. She collapsed in Sarahs arms, still breathing heavy.

When she caught her breath and was “returning to earth”, she couldnt thank them enough. She got up and hugged Jenny and Sarah hugged them both. They were in a three way hug for almost a minute.

Sarah: “Thank You for letting us service you. We always enjoy helping others like this. We will leave you alone now and if its alright with you, we would like to come back sometime and do this again.


Girl: “I would like that and thank you VERY MUCH! It was wonderful! You two were a blessing on a busy day.”


Sarah and Jenny kissed her on the cheek and started to walk out the door when the girl noticed her clothes were gone.


Girl: “Hey! Where are my clothes?!”


Sarah laughed on the way out and said, “Our services are the best but we are not free. Your clothes are our payment. Good bye to you and thank you again.”


Girl: “WAIT! How will I get out of here and get home??!”


She never got an answer. Sarah and Jenny walked out and back into the store, laughing. Jenny said, “That was the most fun that I have had in a long time. I want to stay a while to see her come out of the bathroom.” Sarah said, “Me too. We will hang around for a while.”

Before they left the bathroom where the girl was “trapped”, Sarah taped a message to the outside of the door. It said, “Out of order”. Jenny laughed when she saw that. It meant that no one would come in to “rescue” her. She would have to come out on her own. The two of them continued around, pretending to shop; looking for another person to “tease”. They stayed in the general area of the bathroom to see if she came out. About 2 hours went by and they thought she might be waiting for closing time or that she went out a back door somewhere. Suddenly she came running out of the door, naked as the day she was born, ass bouncing and tits flopping. She tried to cover her face and still watch where she was going and she ran out the front door. Sarah and Jenny were laughing so hard they almost fell on the floor. They were not the only ones. Everyone that saw her was pointing and laughing. The employees near Sarah and Jenny recognized her and were yelling her name. Sarah told Jenny that they had better go in case someone saw them. For the first time in a long time, no one looked at Sarah. She was still, by far, the most beautiful woman in the world but not as interesting as a naked girl running through the store. On the way out Sarah gave the girls clothes to another girl at the front desk. Sarah told her she found them in the back lying behind a counter.

Sarah and Jenny got into their car and started laughing all over again. Jenny told Sarah that all she could think of now is to lick Sarahs pussy. Jenny was so attracted to her right now. She had never had so much fun! Sarah reached down to rub Jennys pussy and realized that Jenny was dripping just as much as she was. They jumped into the back seat and Jenny got on top and in a “69” they both licked each other to satisfy their own lust and love for each other. Jenny had learned to be a prime pussy licker like Sarah. It didnt take long. Both soon had a face full of the others pussy juices. Both Sarah and Jenny never wanted each other more than that moment. Their tongues were buried in each others pussy with their mouths covering them. Each was licking and sucking like they were starving to death. They “came” at the same time and with such violence, they were kicking the windows and the seats. The car was rocking back and forth and the windows were all fogged up. They collapsed in each others arms for a few minutes before they realized someone was watching them.

Sarah looked up and saw the kid that they teased before that blew his cum in his pants. The stain was still there. Just as the two looked up at him he began to move away. Sarah opened the door quickly and called to him. He stopped and looked as Sarah called him to her. She called him in the sweetest voice she could. He couldnt resist. Sarah and Jenny were both naked and standing outside the car. When he came back to them, Sarah knew once again he was hooked and all she had to do is “real him in”.



Sarah: “Were sorry about earlier. Why dont you let her (Jenny) or I give you a proper blow job? Its the least we could do.


Boy: “Well, OK. Where do we do it, in the car?”


Sarah: “Yes, silly, unless you want to do it out in the open?”


Sarah led the way into the car and winked at Jenny so he couldnt see. Jenny just winked back and slid over to the other side of the back seat. The boy slid in the middle and Sarah fallowed him. He was now thinking that he was in heaven. He had two beautiful girls beside him that wanted to suck his cock.

Sarah asked him in the sweetest voice she had, “Which one of us do you want to suck your cock?” He turned red and quietly pointed at Sarah. He was staring at her tits and pussy with his mouth hanging wide open. Sarah reached down and slowly unbuckled his belt and slid his pants off. She slowly and very lightly, rubbed his cock while Jenny took off his shirt. He leaned back but was tense. He had never done this. He hadnt even seen a girl totally naked before. Sarah kept rubbing his cock and stroking it as she moved up and kissed him a long sexy kiss. Her tongue slid into this mouth. He was slow to respond but moved his tongue around hers. He closed his eyes while Sarah stroked him a little harder. She told him to touch her tits and press her nipples between his fingers. He reached up and took hold of her tits and fondled them for a minute then gently played with her nipples. Sarah pretended to be turned on and told him, “Oh YES! Just like that! Pinch them and twist them!”

Sarah was whispering in his ear and he didnt notice Jenny slip out of the car and around by the trunk. Jenny gently closed the trunk and slipped back in just as he opened his eyes to look at her. Jenny gave Sarah the signal. She pushed down on the top of her head to let her know to begin to suck him. Sarah moved down his stomach, kissed him several times on the way down to his rock hard cock, which was now oozing pre-cum. As she slipped her mouth over it and swallowed the whole thing, he gasped and started to breathe heavy. Jenny moved over and began to kiss him while Sarah was sucking on his cock. Sarah was being careful. They were setting him up but she had always taken pride in sucking someones cock or licking someones pussy to make them cum.

Jenny was kissing him and rubbing his stomach while Sarah worked a little harder. Sarah was trying to go slow but this kid had never been with a girl and was a walking bucket load of raging hormones. He started to yell while Sarah grabbed his ass and took his cock all the way in and worked it with her tongue. He “came” with a vengeance! He must have had an entire quart saved up. He stiffened up for a bit while he was pumping his load down Sarahs throat. Soon, he relaxed. It looked like he just ran a marathon. HE was completely exhausted. Sarah leaned back up and kissed him. She still had some of his cum in her mouth and she pushed it into his mouth. He jerked for a second, then kissed her back and swallowed his own cum. He knew that the most beautiful woman in the world just gave him a blow job and he was in heaven.

Sarah told him that they were sorry about earlier and they were glad to repay him.


He babbled, “Thank you. Will you please do this again? I promise I wont tell a sole about it.”


Sarah smiled and said, “I will if you do us one little favor.”


Boy: “Anything. What do you need?”


Sarah pulled out a small metal device of some kind and said, “Jenny bought this for her boyfriend for his birthday. Hes been asking for one. She would like you to try it on and tell her how it feels. She wants everything to be perfect.”


Boy: “Sure but what is it?”


Sarah: “It goes on you cock. It is meant to protect him but Jenny wants to be sure that its comfortable before she gives it to him.”


The boy agreed. Sarah slipped the curved metal tube over his cock (now limp enough). Then she slipped a ring behind his balls and attached a somewhat complicated locking mechanism to it to lock the two large pieces together along with a couple of smaller pieces in order to make them fit properly on him.


Sarah: “How does it feel?”


Boy: “It feels fine. Its comfortable enough.”


Do you think it could be worn a long time without any problems?”


Boy: “I guess so. Can I walk around with it for a bit to make sure?”


Sarah: “Sure. Go ahead.”


Boy: “HEY! Where are my clothes?”


Sarah: “We took them. They are our payment for your blow job. Here is your wallet and keys and everything else for your pockets. We dont want that.”


Boy: “You cant leave me like this. Take this thing off!”


Jenny: “If you hurry across the parking lot, you can get to your car and get home before anyone sees you. That “thing” will stay on until I decide to remove it. It will make sure you are a good boy. With this on, you will not be able to masturbate or even get hard. If you start to get hard it becomes VERY uncomfortable. This device is made of a special steel alloy and cant be cut. The lock is incorporated in the device and uses a special key to open it. The metal has a melting point of about 300 degrees Fahrenheit so I wouldnt recommend trying to get it off that way.”


Boy: “Please let me out of this. I will do anything you ask. You cant leave this on me forever.”


Sarah (To Jenny): “Hes right. We should let him out if it once in a while.”


Jenny: “Ill tell you what. You will pay us $500 cash to meet with us. You will receive two blow jobs; One from each of us. After your blow jobs, you will be put back into the device until you pay us another $500. You can have as many blow jobs as you can afford. There is no limit. This will go on indefinitely.”


Boy: “Please dont do this. I work at a grocery store. I can barely pay the rent. I cant afford $500. I will do whatever you want but please take this off me”


Jenny (laughing): “You are already doing whatever we want. We want you to wear this so that we are the only two people that can enjoy your little cock. You will think of us always but I wouldnt recommend it too much. That device gets very tight and uncomfortable when you think naughty thoughts. As to affording it, that is your problem.”


Sarah: “He IS kind of small. I think even you could swallow his entire cock.”


Boy (Crying): “What do I do? How will I find you?”


Sarah: “This is what you will do from now on. You will get e-mails from her, which will give you instructions. The address will be ToyBoy@Yohoo.com. The password is “Gulliboy”. Remember it. I will not tell you again. If you lose or forget this, you are on your own. Check this email several times per day. She will be expecting answers to any questions we send. Most of the time, they will be nothing important but if she gets no answer to a question within 12 hours, you will never hear from us again. When you need to contact her or answer her questions, send an email to yourself, do NOT reply to it. We will be checking it often. If you change the password, you will never hear from us again. Do not try to find out our return address or “reply” to an email. We will be going through a false server out of China and you can trace it there but will find nothing beyond that. If you try, you will never hear from us again. Do you understand?”


Boy: “Yes. I understand. How will I contact you when I have the money?”


Jenny: “Send an email to yourself and leave it in the inbox. I will check it and answer you and give you orders on how to meet with us. FALLOW THEM EXCATLY! If you do not, we will know and you will never hear from us. If we even suspect that you are bringing others to help you out of this, we will know that too and you will be on your own. We are NOT stupid. We will set up a meeting place and time. You will have a ten minute window to be there. If you are late for any reason, it will cost you an additional $500 for the next time. In other words, if you miss the appointment, the next meeting will cost you $1000. Do you understand?”


Boy: “Yes. I understand. How do I know you will keep your word and meet with me?”


Jenny: “You have no choice. Think what you wish. If you ever question my word again, it will be a LONG time until you ever cum! I am now in control of your little cock, so just do as youre told and well all be happy. After youve paid for your device and my first year of college, I will think about letting you lose.”


Sarah: “You are now in the hands of a sixteen year old. She can be very unpredictable and I will not interfere with any decisions she makes concerning you. I would suggest you be very respectful. Now, get out of here and go!


The boy ran out of the car across the parking lot naked as the day he was born. Jenny noticed his butt cheeks and steel cased cock bouncing up and down all the way. She told Sarah he looked so cute running like that. They both laughed and kissed each other, got in the front seat.


Jenny: “How long are we really going to keep him? It is going to be interesting to tease him some more.”


Sarah: “I am not sure how long we should keep him. That device and the bitchs collar cost a lot of money and I want to get reimbursed for them. They had to be special ordered and it will be fun to tease him some more. We can talk about it later. We have as long as we want to decide. Hes not going anywhere. I know what this will do to him. When we see him next, he will be crawling to us on his hands and knees begging to please us.”


Jenny: “Really? I think I would like to see that. Lets go home and see how the bitch is doing. I want to know if she is learning anything, yet.”


The two of them drove home. They never did put their clothes back on and walked into the house, just as they left: Naked. They walked in to the living room, stopped and stared when they saw the bitch, just as Mike and Rob left her. She was still chained to the floor, ass bloody and cut up by the beating she had received and her tits all black and blue…..…………..


TO BE CONTINUED………………….















Cindys Lessons    Part 4



Before Sarah and Jenny drove into the driveway, they both stripped out of their skimpy clothes. They promised each other they would be naked on the property at all times.  Jenny looked at Sarah and told her that she deserved to stay naked all the time because of what they made Sarah do. Sarah winked and said, “I want you naked because you are beautiful and I will always enjoy looking at you. I will always want to suck on your nipples and taste that wonderful pussy of yours. Your ass drives me wild!” Jenny smiled and told her, “I will always want to taste and lick your pussy too. Any time you wish it; I will lick and suck you to as many orgasms as you wish. ANY TIME! ANYWHERE!” They both smiled and hugged each other and went into the house.

They walked in and saw the bitch. She was tied up just as they left her, except for a few small differences. She had many more bruises and deep cuts in her ass and her tits were bruised where she was whipped and beaten.  Sarah went into the kitchen and told Jenny to take care of the bitch and she would make them some dinner.

Jenny unlocked and untied the bitch. She immediately fell to the floor and began to move slowly and tried to get up but was stiff and sore. She fell back down into a fetal position and just lay there. Jenny told her to clean the cum and other liquids on the floor. The bitch Looked up and said something in that raspy voice of hers and stuck her middle finger up at Jenny. Jenny couldnt hear what she said but her gesture was loud and clear! Jenny kicked her in the stomach as hard as she could. A large volume of air rushed out of the bitchs lungs along with a mouthful of cum. As she was gasping for breath, Jenny locked her up to her leash and kicked her again but this time in her bruised and cut ass. If the bitch was capable of screaming, she would have. She was gasping for breath and had absolutely NO voice left. The loudest she could yell was a raspy whisper.

As Jenny went into the kitchen, she glanced behind her and saw the bitch leaning down to lick up the floor. She was still breathing heavy and trying to catch her breath but still was trying to lick it clean so Jenny just left the room.

As Jenny came in, Sarah had almost had dinner finished. She told Jenny to go ahead and feed the bitch before they ate. Jenny got her bowls and put her “food” and “water” out for her near her bed. Her food was dog food mixed with the hottest, hot sauce they had. Her water was Jenny and Sarahs piss mixed with water so the bowl was full. As Jenny put the bowls down, she noticed the bitch licking the floor clean. Jenny told her when she was finished, she could have her dinner but not until the floor was CLEAN! Sarah and Jenny agreed that she would drink only piss water and eat only dog food, with vitamins. They wanted her to stay healthy.

       The bitch was hurting very bad while she was licking the floor. She was in terrible pain. Her ass was still oozing blood and her tits were going to be black and blue for a week. All her joints and muscles hurt due to the fact she was tied in that one position for a long time but that she was constantly struggling with all her strength to get lose and get away. Her ass hole was sore. She had been fucked in the ass for the first time in her life and Robs cock was HUGE! He shoved all nine inches up her ass. The floor had blood, cum, and her own juices all mixed together. There now was also and puddle of cum she puked up that she had to swallow again.

       She crawled over to her bed. She was hungry and thirsty. She stared to lap up her water and almost coughed it on the floor. It was all she could do to keep it in her mouth and swallow it. She noticed right away that it was piss water. She had no choice. She was thirsty and needed water. After she drank the water all up, she stuck her face into the food dish and began to gobble up the dog food. She knew what it was right away. She could smell it. She ate a few chunks and threw the bowl across the room. She was not going to eat dog food!

       Sarah and Jenny walked in to see what the noise was. When she saw them, she backed into the corner and was afraid. She didnt want any more pain but eating dog food was disgusting. Sarah walked over to her, picked her up by her collar, looked her in the eye and commanded her to pick it up. She told her that when children are bad, they are punished. She threw her to the floor and told her if she didnt pick it all up, she would find a NEW meaning of the word “punishment”! Jenny started to walk toward her and she scrambled away and started to pick it up. The bitch was more afraid of this sixteen year old. Jenny was betrayed by someone she thought was a friend…..herself.

The bitch finished picking it up as quickly as she could. When she put it down by her bed and started to “pick” at it, Jenny came over and took it from her. Sarah told her that if she didnt want it, she didnt have to eat it. They walked back into the kitchen and left the bitch alone.

The bitch curled up and tried to sleep on her bed. She realized that she truly was hungry and should have eaten the dog food. She still had the taste of piss in her mouth too. She tried to relax but she was in pain. Her ass hurt from the whipping. Her ass hole hurt from being fucked in the ass. Her tits hurt from being whipped. All her muscles and joints hurt from being hung up by the ceiling. She tried to ask Jenny and Sarah for the food back but she couldnt talk above a raspy whisper and they didnt hear her. She just lay there. She was still hoping she could get a chance to get away but the more she thought about it, the more she realized she didnt have any idea where to go even if she did escape. Sarah had erased her from existence.

Sarah came in a little later and asked her if she needed to go outside. She said she didnt. Sarah then told her to lie on her stomach. She pleaded with her to not hurt her but Sarah just told her to shut up. The bitch tensed up and closed her eyes. She was afraid and didnt know how much pain she could stand. She saw Sarah put something on her hands and figured it was some new punishment for her. She just closed her eyes and prayed it would be over quickly. When she felt Sarahs hand on her ass, she jerked in fear. What she felt was not pain. Sarah was rubbing some kind of ointment on her. She relaxed and kept her eyes closed. It felt SO good! Whatever it was, it was taking the sting from the cuts in her ass. She turned her head to the side and whispered, “Thank you”. Her response was genuine.


Sarah smiled and said: “If you would just cooperate and stop fighting us, things would be much better for you. You hurt Jenny more than you know by betraying her like you did. She wants revenge. I am angry but want to teach you a lesson. Anyone that hurts Jenny will learn what the cost is for hurting her. If you dont start behaving, I will let Jenny have 100% control over you. You really deserve it but I am trying to accomplish something with you. If I dont succeed, Jenny and I will both make you suffer even more than I ever did at your hand.”


The bitch didnt say anything. She just laid her head back down and let Sarah continue applying the ointment. Sarah finished a few minutes later and got up to leave when the bitch said, “Thank you.” Sarah didnt even look back. She just left the room and went back into the kitchen where Jenny was.


Jenny: “Why did you do that? I want her to feel all the pain I felt when I tortured you. No level of pain is enough for her.”


Sarah: “I am angry with her too. She needs to feel pain. It is not for me, it is for the pain I saw in your eyes when you were letting them torture me. She will feel much more pain than this. She needs to feel other types of pain besides physical pain.”


Jenny: “What do you mean? Do you have something in mind for her?”


Sarah: “Yes. I do. First thing she needs is a few decorations. She needs the ones that I had plus more. We will take her tomorrow. Today, I have something in mind for her. Come and help me. Well need the locks and chains.”


Sarah told jenny what she had in mind for the bitch and Jenny got the chains and locks they needed. They unlocked her leash and dragged her under one of the hooks in the ceiling. She tried to pull away but she was no match for the two of them and most defiantly no match for Sarah. They put her on her knees directly under the hook and connected a chain form the hook to a ring on each side of her metal collar. They used some straps and pulled her arms together behind her back and tied them tight from the elbows down to her wrists. Jenny now supported her while Sarah continued to tie her up. Sarah then strapped her knees up together so she couldnt pull her legs apart at all. Then her ankles were tied as tight as possible to her wrists. The neck chain was then adjusted just right so her neck was pulled tight but her full weight was all on her knees.

Sarah told Jenny to let go. The result was that the bitch was tied so her wrists were pulled tight around her back and attached to her ankles so that neither had any slack at all with her back slightly arched. Her neck was pulled tight so she couldnt relax. She could only wobble around to stay on her knees so she wouldnt choke herself.


Jenny: “What about the gag? Shouldnt we put that on too?”


Sarah: “No. Her voice is so horse that she cant yell anyway. Besides, Mike or some of his friends might come home and want a blow job. This way all they have to do is grab her head and fuck it.”


Jenny: “Nice. This should keep her busy and her ass and tits will still heal properly.”


All the time they were tying her up, she was fighting them and yelling, as loud as she could with her voice gone, to let her go and that they couldnt do this. When Jenny was supporting her she finally grabbed her head around the front and back to cover her mouth up with one hand. When they let her go, she wobbled a bit trying to balance herself.        If she relaxed too much, she would choke and cough a little from the collar pulling on her neck. She finally stopped yelling. When she moved her mouth, it just made things worse and they were not letting her down anyway. After a short time, she was getting the hang of balancing without choking but her knees were now in a lot of pain. Her knees were not made to support her entire weight. The pain was getting worse VERY fast! Concentrating on her balance was getting much more difficult and she was choking and coughing more often, now.

Sarah and Jenny went and opened the back door and pretended to go outside. All the bitch heard was the door open and close. She was now alone and if she choked, there was no one to save her. In truth they were sitting quietly in the kitchen watching her and enjoying the show but she didnt know that. She was getting more afraid by the minute. Her arms and legs were numb and she was sweating so much, it was dripping and running down her front and back. Her knees were in pain that was beyond description.

Finally after an hour or so, she couldnt hold herself anymore. She collapsed and started to hang herself on the chains. She began to jerk and tried to breathe while slowly passing out. She finally gave up and was happy to be free of this pain, they were making her endure. She passed out.

Suddenly she was couching and breathing heavy to catch her breath. Her senses were clearing. She awoke and found herself still all tied up but laying on the floor with Sarah and Jenny looking down at her.


Bitch: “Let me up. You almost killed me!”

Jenny: “NO! We are not finished with you!”


Sarah: “You are not learning, are you? Your body, mind, and life belong to us. You have NO “say” in what we do to you. You will endure anything we decide you need in order to teach you your lessons.”


The bitch just glared at them. They left her tied up but laying on the floor for about an hour. She could not feel her arms or legs anymore. Her knees still hurt but not as bad as before. She tried to wiggle around to get some circulation back to her limbs but couldnt.

After an hour they came back and reattached her to the ceiling just as before. Her neck was chained so that her neck was tied TIGHT to the ceiling and all her weight was on her knees and her balancing act started all over. They left the room without saying anything. Telling them to release her wasnt doing anything so she just kept quiet, trying to balance herself like before. It was not too hard but like before when her knees began to ache and hurt, she wobbled and began to choke and cough again. It felt like her knees were being ripped of her legs but she kept wobbling, choking and trying to stay balanced.

She had no idea how long it was but finally she couldnt stay up and relaxed herself. She hung there like before, slowly choking herself. She stopped breathing and passed out again. As she lost consciousness, she hoped she would not return. The pain she was feeling was too much to bare. Suddenly, her head started to clear and she was breathing heavy and coughing, laying on the floor but still tied up. When she was fully awake, she was looking up at Jenny and Sarah again.



       Sarah: “Well bitch, how long are we going to keep this up?”

       Jenny: “I can watch her all afternoon and all evening. We should start taking bets on how long it takes her to pass out.”

       Sarah: “It depends on her but that is a good idea. What should we bet?”

       Jenny: “I know! Whoever wins gets to hang the other from the ceiling and tease them for as long as they want to. The winner gets to lick the others pussy as long as they wish to. The looser gets to orgasm ONLY if the winner lets them. The looser will beg while being driven crazy. It will be fun to watch and the winner is allowed to taste the other until they have their fill of the others juices.”

       Sarah: “Its a bet! Lets write our bets down so the bitch doesnt know what they are.”


       They both wrote their times down, and then hung the bitch back up like before.  The bitch was angry and afraid. She was slowly being killed and they were betting on how long it would take her to die. She was afraid. She didnt really want to die. She kept thinking about what Sarah had said. “It depends on her” What did that mean??? She told them many time to let her down. What more could she do?

       As before, she was chained up and when Jenny let her go, she said, “TIME!” The clock started and the bitch began to wobble and tire quicker than before. The pain in her knees finally made her pass out. She didnt even feel herself stop breathing. She simply passed out from the pain. She woke up, still tied but on the floor looking up at Sarah and Jenny again.


       Jenny: “I WIN!”

       Sarah: “That wasnt fair. She passed out form the pain and not from being choked but a bet is a bet. You win. Well, bitch, what are we going to do with you, now?”


       Bitch: “I cant take this pain. Please let me down.”


       Sarah: “See now? Was that so difficult? All you had to do is ask nicely.”


       Jenny: “Keep her up there and I give you “double or nothing”.


       Sarah: “We should let her down, now. It was the deal that all she had to do is ask nicely and we would let her down.”


       They unchained her from the ceiling and locked her back up to her “leash”. They finally undid all the straps that had her arms and legs tied up. She could feel anything and tried to crawl to her bed but couldnt. Jenny grabbed her hair, pulled her to her bed, threw her head down and told her to be quiet or it would start all over again. The bitch just looked at Jenny and tried to back away but her arms and legs were still numb even though the circulation was returning, slowly. She was silent.

       

       Sarah: “Go tie the bitch outside in the back yard. She is not to watch us when we are together like this. She doesnt deserve it. Tie Rex to her chain to. Maybe he needs some love too.”


       Jenny laughed and dragged the bitch out back. Her arms and legs were not working too well yet. She chained her to a tree in the back along with Rex on a different chain but the same tree. The bitch had only six feet of chain but Rex had more than fifteen feet. Jenny wanted to make sure she couldnt get away from him.


       Jenny: “You are still Rexs bitch and you BETTER do whatever he wants. If he fucks you, you had better clean your filthy juices off his cock for him too! You are not allowed to cum, either!”


       Jenny went back into the house to collect on her bet. She was smiling. She could have as much of Sarah as she wanted. It was not all one sided. Jenny knew that Sarah would cum so wildly she would shake the house down and when she did; her juices would flow like a river and she would get it all!

       Jenny came in and told Sarah to help tie her to the ceiling. Jenny used the straps, locks and leather head strap for her head. With a little help from Sarah, Jenny soon had her tied and locked to the ceiling. She was supported by her arms and legs. All four limbs were attached to the ceiling and spread out wide! Jenny went and got the ball gag and put it in her mouth. She smiled at Sarah and told her she didnt want to disturb the neighbors. Sarah just wiggled and grunted. She was a little afraid but she loved Jenny and would accept anything that she wanted to do to her.

       Jenny left for a minute and came back with something that Sarah couldnt see. She put it on the floor and then began to suck on her nipples. Jenny was very gentle at first. She sucked on each one for several minutes while gently pinching the other one. Sarah was enjoying it. She just wiggled in her bonds and grunted. Jenny rubbed her hands down her side from under her arms to her stomach and rubbed her stomach up and down while occasionally pinching a nipple now and then. Jenny saw that Sarah was getting very wet. She was horny and was already humping the sir in frustration.

Jenny knew what she was going through. Sarah had done it to her. She knew that the lust would completely take over her mind and body very soon. Sarah wouldnt even be able to understand anything at that point. For now, Jenny came around and lowered her mouth on Sarahs beautiful pussy and licked VERY GENTLY! Sarah was humping like crazy. Jenny would only move along with her humping so Sarah was not getting any satisfaction from it. It only drove her deeper into her world of lust and “want”. Jenny got to a point and figured Sarah was about halfway home when she stopped. Sarah shook and wiggled in her bonds while Jenny reached down and picked up a large vibrator and using Sarahs own pussy juices shoved it into her ass. Jenny had some duct tape and taped it so it would stay up her ass and not slip out. She turned it on and went back to Sarahs pussy. Jenny was softly licking her and would suck on her clit once and a while but not nearly hard enough to make her cum. Sarah was shaking and struggling in her bonds. She needed to cum! That vibrator was driving her even madder, if that was possible. Jenny began to lick and suck harder and harder. Just as Sarah was getting close, Jenny stopped. She went up to Sarahs face, pinched her nipples hard and told her she wasnt going to cum just yet. Jenny pinched her on the cheek and told Sarah to wait and that shed be right back. Jenny giggled and walked away.

Sarah shook and struggled in her bonds like an animal! She was screaming into her gag and humping the air so much, Jenny thought the ceiling would come down. Sarah was stronger than most people and was putting on quite a show. Jenny walked back in and began to lick her ear and stick her tongue into her ear. She would gently bite her ear and whisper to her……..



Jenny: “You taste wonderful, Sarah. Do you want to cum? “


Sarah shook her head “yes” rather violently while still struggling in her bonds. Jenny went around to her pussy and ran her fingers up and down softly to get them wet. As she did so, Sarah humped the air even harder and was grunting in rhythm with her own humping. Jenny walked around with her hand dripping with Sarahs juices and rubbed her hand all over Sarahs nose and face.


Jenny: “There you go. Now you know how wonderful your pussy juice smells. Its too bad you have a gag on or you could taste them to but I dont want you to disturb the neighbors. You know, with your pussy juice running down your ass and onto the floor, I can lick it up without even touching your pussy and with hardly no effort at all. With you like this, I can have as much as I want to. When you cum, your pussy juice stops and I dont get any more. Doesnt that sound much better? You dont cum but I get all that I want!”


Sarah just shook her head “NO” and grunted and groaned! Sarah was still struggling, shaking, sweating, and dripping pussy juice all over the floor. Jenny asked her if she wanted to have her pussy licked. Sarah nodded her head “YES” and screamed into her gag!! Jenny said, “Ok. I will lick you pussy if you want me to that badly.” Jenny went around and took a moment to admire the flow of juice from Sarahs pussy. She leaned down and slowly and gently began to lick and suck on her pussy. The effect was dramatic. Sarah let out a long grunting moan and tried her best to push her pussy into Jennys face but when she did, Jenny just moved back with her and licked even softer. Sarah was “mad” with frustration. She couldnt stop humping but the more she did the lighter Jenny licked. It was driving her insane! Jenny licked as soft as she was able but Sarah was still getting close to Cumming. Just as Sarah was about to cum, Jenny backed away, again. She moved around to Sarahs ear and said, “There you go. Youve had you pussy licked. Do you feel better now? It was a great deal of effort on my part. You ARE grateful, arent you? Do you want me to stop now to rest?”

Sarah was insane with frustration. She didnt know how to answer. She could only shake her head. She shook her head “yes”, then “no”, then “yes”, then “no” again. Jenny nibbled on her ear and told her to take all the time she needs to make up her mind. She needed to get something to eat and would be back in a little while. Jenny rubbed Sarahs pussy with her hand a couple of times and left the room. Sarah just continued to hump the air and scream into her gag.

Jenny went into the kitchen and was enjoying watching Sarahs frustration and lust. Her lust had completely consumed her at this point. She looked out the back window to check on the bitch. The bitch was still tied up next to her lover (Rex). Rex was sleep on his stomach resting his head on his paws. The bitch was lying on her side with her back up against him. They seemed content so she didnt disturb them. Jenny was wondering if Rex got a “quickie” before he lay down.

Jenny got some chips and a beer and sat at the table so she could watch Sarahs thrashing around. Sarah continued to scream into her gag while struggling. It was perfectly clear to Jenny and anyone that could see her that she needed to cum so badly that she would do ANYTHING to get satisfaction. Jenny knew what that felt like when Sarah had her up there like this but she was never teased this long. Jenny was having fun teasing her and it was worth every minute.

When she was about half way through her beer, she decided it was time to tease her some more. She began to lick and nibble on her ear. She whispered to her, “Did you miss me?” Sarah nodded her head wildly, “YES”! I need some more of your pussy. I think I will go quench my thirst. Sarah kept nodding “YES” as hard as her bonds would let her. Jenny went around and just stared at Sarahs pussy. She truly thought it looked wonderful and she wanted to dive in but she was having too fun teasing Sarah.

Jenny started to lick Sarahs juice up from her ass and thighs. She licked all around until the only juice left was coming out of her pussy.


Jenny: “Now what should I do? There is no more juice for me. I know! I will simply wait until there is more. I will have to make sure your juices keep flowing for me.”


Sarah just shook and kept nodding “yes”, then “no”. She had no idea how to answer Jenny anymore. She was lost in her own world of lust and desire and was going insane with “need”. Jenny began to softly lick Sarahs pussy again. She ran her tongue up and down, slowly and lightly. She would push her tongue into Sarahs pussy and work it around slowly. Sarah continued to hump and scream. Just as Sarah got close again, Jenny stopped. She went around and whispered into her ear, “There. Now your pussy is running like a river again. I can never get my fill of your juice and I have found a new way to get as much as I want. Keep the juices flowing, honey. I am going to finish my lunch. You keep thinking naughty thoughts and Ill be right back to clean you up again.”

Sarah screamed and shook her head “no”! Jenny just laughed and bit her ear and said, “Ill be back soon. Dont go away.” She giggled while she walked away was wondering what she was trying to say with all those screams, grunts and groans.

Jenny sat down to finish her beer while watching Sarahs struggles. She was thinking that maybe she could get Sarah to agree to anything at this point and she wanted something that she probably wouldnt normally agree to. Jenny smiled and went back in by Sarah.

Jenny knew that Sarah would agree to anything right now and Jenny wanted something. Jenny went around and licked Sarahs juice off her ass and thighs again. She lapped up the pussy juice on her ass and slowly worked her way up to her pussy. It was still flowing with juice and Sarah was not making it any easier. She was bucking and flailing around so badly it was hard to even get close to her pussy. Jenny gave her a couple of good licks and told her that if she didnt hold still, she would never be able to finish. Sarahs struggles let up some but it was obvious that she was no longer in control. Her pussy was in control at this point and Sarah was along for the ride. Jenny licked and sucked lightly at first then sucked harder and harder. Just before Sarah was going to cum, Jenny stopped. Sarah screamed again while Jenny told her that if she let her cum, she had to let Jenny add some decorations of her own to the bitch. If she didnt agree, this would go on all day and night. Jenny told her that she was getting a good fill of pussy juice like this and was enjoying watching her.

Sarah shook her head “YES” as hard as she could. Jenny said, “I take that as a “yes” to my request?” Sarah kept shaking her head “YES”.


Jenny: “Since you agree to let me help with the bitch, I will let you cum.”


Sarah groaned and shook her head “yes” some more. Jenny went back to licking and sucking Sarahs pussy. She was licking with the intention of taking Sarah over the edge. Just when she was close, Jenny stopped again. Sarah screamed and jerked violently as Jenny walked away. Jenny told her she forgot something and would be right back. Sarah was a babbling fool at this point and the vibrator was still shaking in her ass and was making the level of lust and frustration even greater! It would never make her cum. All it was doing was intensifying her insanity.

Jenny wanted to watch her some more. She just stood there in the kitchen and watched her. It was fascinating. Sarah would agree to anything she wanted at this point. The problem was that in the “state” she was in, she wouldnt remember a thing. Jenny laughed at that thought. Even after five minutes, Sarah was jerking and shaking, still trying to cum. She couldnt until Jenny let her.


Jenny went back and whispered into Sarahs ear, “I see you have some fresh juices for me. I will clean it all off for you.”


Sarah shook her head, “YES”!


Jenny bit her ear and said, “This is nice. I could keep this up all day just to taste your juices.”


Sarah shook her head, “NO”!


Jenny: “You mean you want me to stop? I thought you were enjoying it too.”


Sarah shook her head, “NO”!


Jenny knew what she was doing. She was enjoying Sarahs frustrations in trying to answer her questions properly. Jenny moved around to Sarahs pussy and licked her ass and thighs clean again. She gave her pussy a couple of licks, the whispered into Sarahs ear, “You taste so very good. I will never get my fill of you. If I let you cum, you promise to let me add some of my decorations to the bitch?”

Sarah shook her head, “YES”!!! Jenny moved down to her dripping wet pussy and began to lick and suck with a vengeance. She would let Sarah cum, this time. It didnt take long. Sarahs pussy was a virtual river of juice and Jenny was lapping up every drop. She put her mouth on Sarahs pussy to make a perfect seal and sucked like her life depended on it. As she suck, she pushed her tongue as far up Sarahs pussy as she could and wiggled it around. Jenny noticed with amusement that she could feel the vibrator in Sarahs ass on her tongue.

Suddenly it happened. Sarah suddenly pulled herself up and went absolutely stiff and screamed at the top of her lungs. Her pussy was running like a river and even Jenny couldnt keep up. Her juice ran down Jennys chin and over her tits. Sarah jerked and tensed up for almost a minute. Jenny knew that she had cum several times. She just kept screaming as Jenny kept licking and sucking. Finally, Sarah went limp. It appeared that she had passed out. Jenny went and saw that she was breathing and still conscious but still in her little world of pleasure.

Jenny unlatched Sarahs legs and helped her stand but she went limp at first and it was difficult.  As Jenny unlatched her arms she fell to the floor. Jenny caught her and unlatched the harness on her head and took off the gag. Sarah just moaned and let Jenny hold her up. Jenny walked to the couch and lay her down. Sarah collapsed on the couch with her eyes closed and just lay there. Jenny leaned over and kissed her gently on the mouth. She crawled behind Sarah on the couch and lay there with her like two spoons in a drawer. Jenny put her arms around Sarah and as she was pulling her close, Sarah held her arms and pulled Jenny in tight also. Sarah mumbled something unintelligible, and then fell asleep. Jenny whispered into her ear, “I love you”. They fell asleep in each others arms. Just as Jenny fell asleep she remembered the bitch tied out back, then thought, Fuck the bitch! Sarah will always be more important than that dog! She pulled Sarah in close and slept.

It was a couple of hours later when Sarah woke up. As she stirred, Jenny woke up too. Sarah turned around and said to Jenny, “I love you”. Jenny kissed her a long passionate kiss and said, “I love you too”. As they got up, Jenny noticed Sarah rubbing her wrists and ankles a little.


Jenny: “Are you hurt? I am sorry. I would never want to hurt you.”


Jenny winked and said: “Besides, you DID lose the bet.”


Sarah hugged Jenny and said: “Actually, I think I won. They are just a little sore. You didnt hurt me. On the contrary, I have never had an experience like that. You took me to such a world of pleasure that I will never be able to duplicate. I not only love you but I need you more than ever. Please tell me that you will please me like that again.”


Jenny giggles and said: “I would enjoy that very much on two conditions.”


Sarah: “Anything. Just name them.”


Jenny: “First; you will do it to me too. You did it to me once before and I know what it is like. Thats why I did it to you. I KNOW there is nothing like it!”


Sarah smiled and said: “That is not something you need to negotiate for. I would always want to give you pleasure like that. ALWAYS and ANYTIME!”


Jenny: “Second; I still would like to add my “decorations” to the bitch. I know you said I could but considering the state you were in you would have agreed to anything that I said.”


They both laughed at that and Sarah said, “We will both take her and make sure she knows what it feels like to look like a freak and be on display. May it will help with her lessons. Where is she, anyway?”


Jenny: “SHIT! I forgot about her. Shes chained out back with her boyfriend. I will go get her.”


Sarah: “Her BOYFRIEND?”


Jenny (Smiling): “Sure. Rex.”


They both laughed as Jenny went out back to bring the bitch back in. Jenny went out back just in time to see Rex jump on her back and start to fuck her. Jenny laughed and went back to get Sarah so they both could enjoy the show. Sarah and Jenny went out and sat on the back steps and watched Rex get another piece of his bitchs ass. The bitch didnt fight at all this time. She just stuck her ass up so he could shove his cock in easier, this time. As Rex shoved his cock in, the bitch just closed her eyes and groaned in pleasure.


Sarah: “Should we let her cum, this time? What do you think?”

Jenny: “I suppose we could. I think Rex would be disappointed if he didnt make her cum.”


Sarah yelled: “You can cum now bitch but only for Rex!”


The bitch jerked a little and looked at them for a second. She didnt realize that they were watching her. She didnt care much anyway. She seemed to be enjoying Rex, this time. She was humping in rhythm with his fucking…..or trying to. Rex was a jackhammer. The bitch couldnt keep up even though she was trying. She kept closing her eyes and was in her own little world of lust and horniness. It had been a while since she had cum and she started to get very vocal. Even though her voice was still very raspy, she kept yelling for Rex to fuck her.


Bitch: “OH YES! OH YES! GOD YES! FUCK ME HARDER! FUCK ME HARDER, REX! GO! GO! OH MY FUCKING GOD, IM CUMMING!!!  AHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH!


Rex didnt seem to mind her yelling. He just kept fucking her with his tongue hanging out drooling all over her back. Soon after she came, they could tell Rex was pumping his load deep inside her cunt. He stiffened up and grabbed her back tight, then collapsed on her back. He tried to pull out but his knot was still stuck. The bitch yelped a couple of times when Rex tried to pull out but she was relatively quiet considering that she had a huge cock stuck up her cunt. Finally Rex gave a good pull, the bitch yelled and his cock came out with a squishy pop. The bitch collapsed on the ground as Rex sat back to clean up his cock which was still hanging out quite a bit.


Jenny yelled: “Hey bitch! Dont forget your manners. Help you boyfriend clean himself!!”


The bitch looked at her with a pleading look but when she saw Jenny was DEAD serious, she didnt argue at all. She was cold, tired, thirsty, and hungry. She looked at Rexs cock and it disgusted her but she lowered her mouth to it and started to lick it. Jenny yelled, “Come on bitch, put some heart into it or he may find another bitch to fuck!” Both Sarah and Jenny laughed at that while they saw that the bitch was taking his cock into her mouth and sucking it. Her head started to bob up and down on Rexs cock. Apparently Rex wasnt interested or the bitch couldnt suck cock very well. His cock slowly slipped back in and the bitch just glared at Jenny and Sarah.

Sarah told Jenny that it would be another lesson for her. She must learn to suck cock better. Jenny told Sarah that it was a lesson for another day. They both knew that they had plans tomorrow for her. Sarah walked out and let Rex loose. He ran into the house when Jenny called him. Sarah looked down at the bitch and said, “See? We can trust Rex. HE is allowed to run lose. You are the one thats giving us troubles. Lets go!”

Sarah unlocked her and practically dragged her back into the house. Sarah had three times her strength and she was too stupid to simply walk along with her. She kept fighting to get loose. Finally Sarah yanked the chain so hard; the bitch choked a little, yelped and went face first into the dirt. She still couldnt talk very well. Her voice was still very “raspy”.

Sarah dragged her into the house and chained her to her floor bolt. She just lay down on her bed, glad to be inside. She prayed no one saw her outside. She turned to Sarah and said, “Im hungry. I want my food back.” Sarah said, “You will get only water until you learn to ask nicely.”

Sarah went into the kitchen with Jenny. In a few minutes, Sarah brought a bowl of water for her. When the bitch leaned over to get a nice big drink, she noticed it smelled like piss, just like the first one. She looked up at Sarah just as she was about to drink. Sarah smiled and knew what she was thinking. Sarah said, “This is you water from now on, bitch. It is 25% water and the rest is our piss. It will be all you get to drink from now on. If you keep giving us trouble, you will be drinking 100% piss. If you still give us trouble, you will be drinking something even worse. I strongly suggest you cooperate!”

The bitch just leaned over, stuck her face in the “water” and drank. She was so very thirsty. She kept thinking, what was worse than drinking piss?? She didnt want to know. She had to start rethinking things. Maybe she would act like they want and when she could; she would escape from these two. This seemed like a better idea. She would do this. She finished her “water” and lay down. The she realized that Rexs cum was oozing out of her cunt. She was worried. She didnt want to bother them but if she got the floor dirty, they would punish her. She didnt know what to do so she tapped on the wall to get their attention.

Jenny came in and said, “What do you want, now, bitch?” She whispered, “I need to go out and clean myself. Rexs cum is oozing out of me.” Jenny smiled and said, “You are right. Your boyfriends cum is escaping. You clean it up yourself and DONT get your bed dirty. Now leave us alone!”

Jenny went back into the kitchen. Her and Sarah sat, had some tea and made some small talk for a long time. It was not important what they said but that they were simply together. They only wanted to be together. Sarah said it was time for bed and that they had a long day tomorrow. The bitch had a couple of appointments to keep.


Sarah said to Jenny: “I think we should feed her. We dont want her getting sick.”


Jenny: “I would love to see her starve but then it wouldnt be as much fun. I will give her some dog food but I will put a little “icing” on it for her.”


Sarah: “Icing? What kind of icing are you talking about?”


Jenny took the bowl of dog food and went outside for a moment. When she came back in, Sarah could smell something strange in it. Jenny had added her “icing” to her food. Sarah took a close look at the bowl. There was mostly food, with a few vitamins but there was a new ingredient.

Jenny went into the living room and asked the bitch if she wanted her dinner, now.


Bitch: “I am hungry. Are you going to starve me to death?”


Jenny: “I asked you if you wanted your dinner?!!!”


The bitch saw that look in her eyes and knew that Jenny would gladly take it back and let her go hungry for another day. Jenny finally gave up and started to walk away when the bitch spoke as loud as she could and said, “Please leave the food.”  Jenny put the bowl down and walked away smiling. She was wondering if the bitch would eat it or not. Jenny knew she had to be almost starving but that food was now different with its new ingredient.

Sarah and Jenny walked hand in hand upstairs and left the bitch chained up in the dark with Rex sleeping in her bed with her.


Sarah: “What did you put in that food? It smelled awful.”


Jenny: “I mixed in some of Rexs dog shit that she left laying out there. She is supposed to clean up after him and she didnt. Maybe this will remind her that she will be cleaning it up one way or the other. Sarah and Jenny laughed the rest of the way up to bed.


They had a busy day for the bitch tomorrow and they needed there sleep……………….








       


       


Cindys lessons        PART  5


Sarah and Jenny woke the next morning in bed wrapped in each others arms. Sarah had finally found some peace since her husband (Tracey) had died. The still was the many problems of life but at this moment in time, she was happy. Jenny was a blessing.

Jenny woke shortly after Sarah did. She was young but was becoming wise to the dark side of the world. She was determined to not get swept up in it again. Sarah helped pull her back. She had never known such love and peace could exist. She would do anything for Sarah.

All this went through her head and heart in a second when she awoke but for now she was at peace. She pulled Sarah closer and felt her pull back. She started to cry. Sarah felt her crying, turned and asked her why she was crying. Her answer was simple, “I am happy.” Sarah smiled and said, “I am too and you are the reason for it. I will always love you and may god have mercy on ANYONE that hurts you.” They hugged each other for several minutes and Jenny kept crying. Sarah pulled her away and said, “Come on, lets take a shower and get ready. We have a full day today.”

Sarah was beginning to hate that bitch that hurt Jenny. She wanted to walk downstairs and slowly crush the life from her but she had to keep her head clear and not let emotion rule her life. Tracey would never want that. She would always respect what he stood for.

Sarah pulled Jenny out of bed and walked her by the hand to the bathroom and started the shower. They both were looking forward to it. Sarah watched Jenny and admired her body. It was perfect in every way. She led her into the shower and they stood under the warm water. Sarah grabbed the soap and began to rub it over her body. Jenny took some and started to rub it on Sarah. They kissed and spent a lot of time making sure their tits were clean. Jenny reached down and began to rub Sarahs pussy. Sarah very much wanted to return the favor but she knew Jenny wanted to please her just as much so she continued to slowly rub soap along her tits and stomach while Jenny was continuing to rub her pussy. Jenny slipped her middle finger up into Sarahs pussy and put her thumb on Sarahs clit and squeezed and rubbed her fingers together. The effect was instantaneous. It took less than a minute and a wave of the pleasure of a wonderful orgasm pushed its way through Sarah. Sarah almost collapsed from pure pleasure but Jenny grabbed her before she fell. Sarah moaned gently and leaned on Jenny for support until she returned from her orgasm.

Sarah stood up and kissed Jenny and lowered herself to her knees. The water was running down her body and over her pussy. Sarahs only regret was that she wouldnt be able to taste Jenny with all the water but this was for Jenny, not her. Sarah pushed her tongue into Jennys pussy as far as it would go. She used her tongue to “fuck” her while her lips worked their way around Jennys clit. Sarah was starting to go slower and slower. She wanted Jenny to need to cum. Sarah was an expert at licking pussy, especially Jennys. As the warm water rolled over the two of them, Sarah had Jenny begging to make her cum. Jenny started to pull Sarahs head to her pussy and told her to lick it and suck it hard. Sarah could have kept her from Cumming but she knew it was not as much fun without her all tied up. Sarah knew she would have her chance and then they would see how badly Jenny needed to cum. Sarah took Jenny over the edge. Jenny screamed with pleasure and pulled Sarahs head in tighter. Jenny was Cumming so hard she collapsed in the tub. Sarah caught her easily and Jenny fell over her shoulders. It took a few seconds for Jenny to stand back up. They both stood up together and kissed. Sarah told her to turn around so she could wash her hair. They both took a lot of time cleaning each other off. Jenny told Sarah that she loved her auburn hair and that it tasted good. They both laughed at the joke. Sarah noticed that Jennys hair was becoming more like her fathers. It was turning blond as she got older. They spent some time drying themselves off, fixing each others hair and then hung up the towels.


Jenny: “I guess its time to take care of the bitch. I am looking forward to this.” 


Sarah: “Wait just a second. I have one more thing to do before we go downstairs.”



Jenny turned a looked at her, curiously. Sarah gently turned Jenny around, got on her knees and kissed each of her ass cheeks, then licked her tongue up her ass crack from top to bottom. Sarah got up and smiled at Jenny and told that NOW she was ready. Jenny kissed her quickly on the mouth then let Sarah lead her downstairs by the hand. As they left the bathroom, Jenny started to cry again. She was thinking how happy she was and that maybe the bitch screwed up in reverse by bringing Sarah to her.

When Jenny saw the bitch lying on her bed, she got angry all over again. She almost went over and kicked her just for fun but she looked back at Sarah and followed her into the kitchen. The bitch just watched them walk through, and then laid her head back down. Jenny smiled when she noticed that the bitch had eaten all of her food. She had hoped she would choke on it.

It wasnt two minutes after they sat down when they heard a tapping on the wall. Jenny said, “Ill take care of her.” Jenny got up, went into the living room and picked up the bitchs food and water dishes and took them into the kitchen. Jenny squatted down and pissed into her bowl and told Sarah that she would now take her outside. Sarah smiled and grabbed the bowl as Jenny was pulling the bitch out by the leash.  Sarah also pissed into her water dish as they went outside.

Jenny led the bitch outside and Rex fallowed them. Rex, of course was lose but he could be trusted. The bitch was on a short leash. She squatted down in the grass and pissed while Rex finished pissing. Rex began to take a good shit when the bitch looked at Jenny and pleaded to let her use the bathroom. Jenny just laughed and said, “Weve been all through this already. You will always use the back yard. Now if you need to shit, then do so; if not lets get back inside!” The bitch turned red and squatted down and began to shit on the grass. She was mortified to do this in the open and even more so to have someone watch her like this but she really needed to “go”. She and Rex finished at the same time. Rex walked up to the door and waited. The bitch started to head for the door when Jenny yanked on her leash and yelled at her that SHE was not finished. SHE had to clean up!

The bitch went and got the shovel and scraped it onto the end with her hands, then went in the back of the yard and dumped it where she was told to. Before she went back into the yard, Jenny told her to pick up a small hand full of shit. She told her it was her choice whose shit it was. The bitch scooped up a small amount of Rexs shit and asked if that was enough. Jenny said, “Its enough. You dont need much. Now lets go and clean you up before we go in. Normally you would clean yourself up but you cant seem to fallow orders well enough, yet. Now hold that hand with the shit up so it doesnt wash off and you lose it or well just go get some more only the second time will be twice as much now be still!”

Jenny sprayed her all off well, with cold water of course. Jenny enjoyed that a lot! The bitch did a good job of not losing her shit so Jenny pulled her back into the house. Sarah saw the shit in her hand and told her to take the shit and mix it up good with her food. She looked at them with a pleading look until Jenny yanked on her leash so hard she fell down. Surprisingly she didnt drop the shit. Sarah said, “Dont do it if you dont want to but you will not be fed until you do and the next time there will be twice as much shit in the bowl and less food. Its your choice but hurry. We dont have all day!” The bitch knelt down by her bowl and did her best to mix it all up together. When she was finished, she looked up at Jenny but said nothing.


Jenny: “You are not finished. Clean up your hands, now.”


The bitch hesitated but when she saw the look on Jennys face, she began to lick her hands clean of the food and the shit. Jenny told her to carry her bowls into the living room and that shed better not make a mess! Jenny chained her back up and told her to eat up. They had some appointments for her and didnt want to be late.

The bitch sniffed her food and almost gagged. It smelled awful and she now knew it tasted even worse but she had no choice. She thought about starving herself but she was afraid of how they would deal with her and besides, she was a coward and more afraid of starving to death. She leaned over and started to eat. It was even worse now that she knew what was in it. Last nights food tasted bad but NOW she knew why. She ate about half before she drank half of her water. It tasted like piss but it was not as bad as the food. She forced herself to eat the rest of the food. She even licked the bowl clean, and then drank up all the water. She decided that the shit taste was much worse than the piss. She curled up on her bed and tried to remember some of the things that made her happy. Rex came over lifted his leg, pissed on her a little bit, and then lay down beside her. She jerked and almost pushed him away until she realized what he was doing. She was Rexs bitch and he was simply letting everyone else know this. He was marking her as his.

Despite the fact that she was forced to let Rex fuck her, he was still her friend and was not to blame. She pulled him to her and held on to him while she lay there. Rex lay down, licked her face and then closed his eyes to sleep. Her ass still hurt but not nearly as much as yesterday. There were still a few scares but they didnt appear to be permanent. At this point, she tried to keep still. Every time she moved her chain would make noise and she didnt want to attract attention. She just lay quietly and closed her eyes.

Sarah and Jenny were still in the kitchen. Sarah told Jenny that they needed to clean the bitch up. Sarah wanted to take her out today and she wanted her clean enough to be in public. Jenny groaned in complaint but agreed that she was filthy and she stunk! Sarah told Jenny she would have to give her a bath but would have to do it out back like the dog she was. Jenny smiled and told her it would be fun.


Sarah: “Remember to do her hair but youll have to comb and dry it like normal. We need her looking presentable.”


Jenny grumbled and asked: “What are you going to do? Cant you help?”


Sarah: “Not right now, no. Remember our little grocery boy? I have to send him an email with a couple of questions to keep him busy. I wouldnt want him to think we forgot about him.”


Jenny laughed and said: “I forgot about him. Let me know what questions you ask him and dont make them too easy. We want him to “sweat” a little bit.”


Jenny took everything she would need out back so she could wash the bitch off. Just to make things interesting, Jenny put some normal clothes on. It was a psychological thing. The bitch would feel more “exposed” if she was the only one naked. Jenny was proud of that thought and smiled as she went to get the bitch. Jenny unlocked the chain from the floor and held it tight. She expected the bitch to make a run for it but she just followed her out back and didnt say anything.

Jenny locked the chain to the porch railing and handed her some toothpaste and mouth wash. She told her to brush and clean her mouth up good. She had a couple of appointments and they didnt want her smelling like shit. The bitch grabbed them happily. She was grateful to get the taste out of her mouth. When she was finished, she put everything down and waited. She was happy to be able to brush her teeth. She didnt want to have problems with them because of neglect.

Jenny told her to get down on her hands and knees and that she was getting a bath like a dog should. Jenny got the hose and sprayed her down good with cold water. The bitch jerked and jumped a little because of the water being cold but didnt say anything. Jenny wet her down good and didnt miss any part of her. She sprayed her hair, ass, stomach and cunt well enough to wash. The bitch whined a little but stayed quiet. Jenny smiled. She sounded just like a dog. Jenny got out the sponge and lathered her up good. She scrubbed her all over and didnt miss anything. Jenny wanted to have some fun with her and she spent a lot of time on her tits, ass and cunt. As she rubbed her tits with the sponge, she would pinch them every now a then. The bitch seemed to enjoy it. She moaned a couple of times. Jenny would move to her ass and rub the sponge down her ass crack and rub her cunt hard enough so it was nice and clean. Jenny rubbed her hand and sponge across her cunt a few times and hard enough so the bitch was starting to enjoy it. She even began to stick her ass up and hump the sponge. Jenny laughed and said, “My god, bitch, cant you stop thinking about Rex for five minutes??!! This should cool you off!” Jenny hosed her down good to rinse her off. It seemed to work. The bitch calmed down quite a bit and just stayed there shivering from the water.

Jenny told her to come and sit on the steps in front of her. Jenny then did something the bitch wasnt expecting. She began to comb and dry her hair so it wasnt all nasty looking. Jenny pulled out a hair dryer she had plugged into a socket outside and began to dry and comb her hair. The bitch relaxed a little and said, “Thank you for the toothbrush and the bath.”

The bitch sounded sincere which made Jenny even angrier at her than she already was. Jenny yanked her head back with her hair and pulled the chain on her collar in the opposite direction. The bitch was forced to look Jenny in the eyes.


Jenny: “I dont give a fuck how you feel! I could care less if all your teeth rotted and fell out of your head in the slowest most painful way possible! If it were up to me, I would lock you outside permanently like the dog you are! The pain you caused Sarah will be paid in full! Dont ever forget that. You betrayed my friendship and used us for your own pleasure. Now shut the fuck up! Sarah and I will teach you and I will defiantly enjoy it! Now SHUT UP, BITCH!!”


Jenny relaxed her grip on her hair and collar and continued to dry and comb her hair as if she was getting a friend ready for a date. The bitch now knew better. She just kept quiet until she was finished. Soon they were finished and Jenny told her to pick everything and bring it in the house. Jenny unlocked her chain from the porch railing and pulled her back into the house. She set everything on the table and then was chained back to the floor like before. Jenny told her that she better not get her hair messed up or all dirty. The bitch looked her with a little fear in her eyes and just nodded.


Sarah came up to Jenny and quietly said to her, “I heard what you said outside and you are right but be careful. Dont let your anger cloud your judgment. Teaching will take longer and be much more fun than simply breaking her but if we cant I will be happy to break her. Either way she will become a better person whether she likes it or not! She is thick headed, dimwitted and not very intelligent. The first thing shell try is to pretend to change and look for the first opportunity to escape. Keep you guard up and watch her like a hawk!”


Jenny: “You are right. It will be more fun to teach her but I am so angry! I take responsibility for all the pain I caused you but she is partly to blame.”


Jenny fell to her knees and grabbed Sarah by the thighs and began to cry. She kept babbling about how sorry she was to cause Sarah such pain.”


Sarah fell to her knees and hugged Jenny back and said, “I do not blame you. The greatest pain was at the end when I knew that I would NEVER be able to be with you or touch you again. That had hurt more than anything! I had all but given up on everything when that happened. I can also see the pain in your eyes, still.  She is responsible and it makes me angrier than I can say but we both must keep our anger in check. Besides, it will be much more fun to teach her slowly.”


They held each other for several minutes while Jenny cried it all out, again. The bitch couldnt hear most of what was said but she heard enough to know that Sarah was two steps ahead of her. That was her plan; to pretend to change and try to escape. She just lay back down in her bed and felt sorry for herself. She had to find a way to escape and she would keep her eyes open for an opportunity.

       After Jenny had cried it all out, Sarah let her anger get the better of her. She walked into the living room and kicked the bitch in the stomach. The bitch got the wind knocked out of her and she puked up some food. She just curled up, gasping for air.


Sarah: “Jenny still feels the pain that you are responsible for and I will teach you like I said but you will also feel three times that pain in the process. If you are ever responsible for hurting Jenny again, you will NEVER see another sole or the light of day ever again! Now clean up your fucking mess!!!!”


       Sarah went back into the living room and noticed that the bitch had licked up her mess.  She unlocked the bitch and dragged her by the neck and locked her up to a tree outside. Sarah kicked her in the stomach again and walked back into the house. As she walked away, she heard the bitch gasping for breath, again. It made her smile.

When Sarah went back into the kitchen, Jenny was sitting at the table with her head down. Sarah put her hand on Jennys shoulder and said, “Hey, you owe me one, girl.” Sarah hopped up on the table with her legs spread wide right in front of Jenny. She stopped crying and looked up at Sarah and kissed her on the stomach. She smiled and said, jokingly, “Yes Maam!” Sarah laughed, patted her on the head and said, “Lets go! Its dinner time for you!”

Jenny licked Sarahs pussy from top to bottom and back again. Sarah leaned back and let Jenny lick her. Sarah knew that this would cheer her up. Her thoughts were soon lost in Jennys tongue and her mouth. She was getting much better at licking pussy and Sarah was enjoying every minute of it.

Jenny started licking and she too was getting lost in Sarahs pussy. She was always grateful to give Sarah pleasure and this was her favorite! Like before, Sarah juices began to flow and Jenny drank up every drop. Jenny started to tease Sarah until Sarah grabbed her head and pulled her in and said, “No teasing today, babe, EAT!” Jenny smiled to herself and vowed she would get another chance to tease her. It didnt take long at all. Jenny was determined to make up for the pain she caused and did everything she knew to make Sarah cum. She slipped her tongue up her pussy and used it to fuck her as fast as she could. Then, she sealed her mouth on her clit and pulled her tongue out and worked on her clit while she used her fingers to continue to “fuck” her. Sarahs pussy was the better tasting than anything else in the world and Jenny was enjoying every minute of it. Sarahs legs suddenly stiffened up and Jennys head was held tight between her thighs. Sarah moaned and screamed in a wonderful orgasm which made Jenny happy. She was determined to give Sarah as much pleasure as she could.

Sarah had 2 or 3 orgasms before she finally relaxed and pushed Jennys head away. Jenny gently leaned forward and began to clean Sarahs pussy and ass up for her. When Sarah got off the table, Jenny licked the table completely clean of every drop of “Sarah” that was left.

Sarah lifted Jenny up by the hand, onto the table and said, “I get my turn too. Now get that wonderful ass of yours up there and SPREADEM!!” Sarah practically lifted Jenny up and stuck her tongue up Jennys pussy as fast as she spread her legs. Jenny lay back on her hands and closed her eyes. She felt better because she was able to give Sarah pleasure twice. Besides giving her an orgasm she knew Sarah enjoyed Jenny as much as Jenny enjoyed Sarah.

Sarah was even better than Jenny at licking pussy. She knew EXACTLY what to do. Sarah had something else in mind, this time. She brought Jenny right to the edge and held her there. She would bring her almost over the top, and then relax. She worked on Jenny like this several times, then said, “You want to cum, honey? DO YOU?” Jenny just nodded and babbled, “YES! PLEASE! LET ME CUM!!” Sarah worked her with her fingers right to the edge one more time and then backed off.


Sarah (laughing): “I think I will let you cum, later. I have gotten my fill, for now. You will simply have to wait.”


Jenny moaned and almost reached down to finger herself when Sarah gently pulled her hand away and said, “No you dont. Would you deny me the pleasure of making you cum?” Jenny was so very frustrated being right on the edge but would NEVER deny Sarah anything that she wanted. Jenny shook in frustration, before lowering herself to the floor and kissed Sarah. They both tasted each other in that kiss. Sarah smiled at Jenny and said, “This is fun. We should do this again on the table. Maybe next time you will cum.” Jenny hugged her, laughed and said, “My mother once told that I cant cum until she finishes her lunch. You have to promise me you will clean your plate, next time that I am your lunch.”


Sarah: “I promise”.


Jenny: What did you do with the bitch?”


Sarah: “I tied her up outside. I dont want her around when we are together. I guess we should get her ready. We need to put on normal clothes today for what we are doing.”


Jenny: “Do we have to? I was enjoying teasing people. Having that girl in the grocery store run out naked turned me on, big time!”


Sarah: “Me too. We still have our little grocery toy boy to play with. I sent him an email earlier just to see if hes paying attention.”


Jenny: “What did you send him?”


Sarah: “I told him to find out and tell us what the barometric pressure is on the surface of Mars. I told him to give it us in millabars. That should keep him busy. LOL.”


Jenny (laughing): “I would have to agree. I have no idea what it is. Do you know?”


Sarah: “I have a pretty good idea and he better be close or he and that device will become long term friends. Lets go now and get dressed. We will bring our shirts and short tops with us in case we need them.”


Sarah and Jenny got dressed into somewhat normal clothing although they still had on tight and waist low jeans with tight t-shirts, they were not slutty looking at all. On the other hand, the bitch was wearing different attire. She had on the same clothing that Sarah was forced to wear.

The bitch was wearing a very short and tight skirt. It barely covered her ass and cunt. IF she raised her arms the skirt went up with them and most of her was exposed to anyone that was interested in looking. Her top was a tight t-shirt cut off just below her tits. So now if her arms went up, her skirt and t-shirt would pretty much let everything hang out for all to see.

They drove off with the bitch chained to a seatbelt hook on the back seat floor of the car. There is no way she could break the chain and the lock was very large. Her collar was a special titanium/steel alloy with a very sophisticated locking mechanism. It could NEVER be picked. It needed a special key to open. It couldnt be cut off with a saw or a welder. The metal had a melting point that would fry human skin. She was tied up until Sarah or Jenny let her loose. They had brought some other miscellaneous equipment with them also: Handcuffs, More chain, Leather straps, and a bag of something else that the bitch couldnt see.

They drove up to the same tattoo/piercing place that they took Sarah to. Sarah led her by the chain and collar into the building. They walked up to the counter leading the bitch by her “leash”. The man and woman from before were still there and leaning on the counter. 



Man (at counter): “Hi. I see your back. Do you need more work done?”


Sarah: “Not for me, no. We need some work done on our little “doggy” here.”


Woman (at counter): “What did you need done to her? May I suggest some kind of identifying mark so she will be returned to you if she gets lost?”


Sarah: “That is part of what we need, yes. Is there somewhere we can tie her up, for now? She has a habit of running away on us.”


Woman: “Sure. Follow me. One of our work rooms in the back has a sink that you can use, for now.”


After Sarah tied up the bitch, Her, Jenny and the two at the counter discussed what they needed done. Sarah gave her list and when she asked Jenny if there was anything she wanted, Jenny gave further instructions that Sarah didnt know about. Sarah just smiled at Jenny and asked them how much it would cost for all of it. The woman added it up on a piece of paper and said, “$1500, for everything but we dont have time right now.”


Sarah: “Well pay you $3000 to do it right now.”


Man: “Its a deal. Lets get to work.”


The man led Sarah and Jenny to the back room where the bitch was chained up. Sarah told the man that hed better do it in here because the bitch likes to run. He said that he didnt care. This room was fine. The man got all his equipment ready while Sarah and Jenny talked to the bitch.


Sarah (to bitch): “Listen to me very carefully. You will cooperate or you will NEVER see the light of day, again! Do you understand me, bitch??!!”


Bitch (with a frightened look on her face): “I understand. Please. Please let me go. I wont say anything. I promise.”


Jenny slapped the bitch and said: “Did you ever listen to Sarah when she begged you for some kind of understanding? Did you EVER think of how much we were hurting her??! DID YOU, BITCH???!!!”


Bitch (crying): “Im sorry. Im sorry.”


Jenny slapped her again and yelled: “Shut up, fucking bitch!!”


       Jenny told the bitch to strip to make things easier. She was told to sit with her back towards the man so he could work. It took him about ½ hour to put a tattoo on her lower back. It was low but not low enough to cover up with pants or a belt. When he was finished, the bitch couldnt see it but Jenny and Sarah smiled and said, “Its perfect.” The tattoo said in 2 inch letters “I F**K ONLY DOGS”. Next he tattooed on her stomach another tattoo. It was like the other one. It had 2 inch letters and was low but high enough that a belt or pants wouldnt cover it. The second tattoo on her stomach said, “PAIN SLUT”. The only way she could cover them was to wear a full length shirt of some kind. The man placed a bandage over each one to heal. They were covered before the bitch could see them. She tried to see but the man was in the way and had them covered too fast. Jenny laughed and told her to be patient and that she would see them soon enough.

       Next the man got some different equipment. He had some piercings to do and needed other tools. The bitch got scared when she saw the tools. They were not pretty and appeared to be made to cause a lot of pain while doing whatever he was going to do with them. Sarah saw her fear and said, “Dont worry bitch. It wont hurt for long. I know because you had it done to me, or did you forget?” Jenny laughed and watched the man work. He told her to sit with her back and head against the wall. He began to inspect her tits to size up the job. The bitch started to turn red. She had been naked for a while but never in front of a stranger like this. He was inspecting her tits like a tradesman and not in any sexual way at all. Sarah handed him a small bag. He pore the contents out. It was three small paddle locks. He pulled out a tool that looked like a card punch except that it was larger. The bitch looked pleadingly at Sarah and Jenny. She knew what they were doing. Jenny gave her a stern look before she could say anything. She kept quiet but was obviously afraid.

       He told Sarah that the bitchs nipple might not hold the locks so he would have to put the holes deeper than normal. It will work but it will hurt much more. Jenny smiled and said, “GOOD!” He pushed the bitch against the wall and before she could even look down, he punched the first hole in her right nipple. The bitch let out a scream and started to cry. Jenny grabbed her by the mouth with one hand and told her that if she didnt stay quiet she would be punished when they got home with her. The second piercing went fine and she just “mewed” a little and kept crying. The man told Sarah that someone should hold her head for the next piercing or it would be done correctly. Her head had to be COMPLETELY still. Sarah sat down behind her, grabbed her head by the mouth and over her eyes. She couldnt see or speak. All she could do is breathe through her nose. Sarah held her easily.

        The bitch felt was something cold against her nose and then suddenly she felt a VERY painful sting in the cartilage between her nostrils. Then she felt something cold being threaded through the new hole in her nose. Sarah let her go. She looked down and saw three new decorations. She now had a small lock hanging from each nipple and a third lock hanging from her nose. There was a little blood but not much. The nose was mostly cartilage. She started to cry when Jenny told her they had one more little thing to do before they were finished. She looked at them and pleaded again to let her go. Jenny grabbed her by the chin and told her that now she was going to be punished. The bitch just kept crying and sat there with a look of fear on her face.

       The man had one more piercing. He grabbed her tongue with what looked like a pliers with two flat sides at the end. It hand small little teeth so the tongue would not move or slip out. He pulled the same punch out but with a slightly larger tip on the end. The bitch tried to pull back but Sarah grabbed her head just as she backed it into the wall. Sarah held it there tightly while the man pulled her tongue and punched a hole through the center of her tongue. Still holding onto it, he brought up a thick metal ring and threaded it through the hole. He them took out another tool and squeezed the ends together so that it wouldnt fall out. He asked Jenny and Sarah if they wanted the ring welded on so that it couldnt be removed. Sarah said, “Yes, please. We didnt know you did that here.” He told them that this was the first time. He had just gotten this new “toy” last week just for this purpose. Sarah still held onto the bitchs head while the man brought up what looked like a tiny little arc welder. He touched it to the opening in the ring and it welded together instantly. The bitch jerked and squealed a bit but then was quiet.

       The ring was an inch in diameter and it was clear that it was very awkward for the bitch. It was Jennys idea so she smiled and told her to say something.


Bitch: “Phease et me o. Phease? I beee uf oou.”


Jenny laughed. The bitch could no longer pronounce words correctly. She had a VERY SEVERE lisp and it was obvious that she couldnt even pronounce some of the letters in the alphabet. Sarah laughed too. She told Jenny that that was a wonderful idea and that she wished she had thought of it. All the bitch could do is cry. Now, if she pleaded, it not only did no good, her speech made everyone laugh. Now when she talked, people could barely understand her.

The man taped up her nipples and told them to keep them bandaged for a while and to make sure that the piercings get turned every three to four hours so they heal correctly. Jenny led the bitch out front by her leash and waited for Sarah to pay them. Sarah told them that as a tip, the bitch would get on her knees and make them both happy. The man told her to bring her back next week so her tongue would heal fully, first. Sarah told him, “Sure thing. You do a wonderful job here. Thank you.”

Jenny deranged her out to the car and pushed her into the back seat. They threw her clothes on the front seat. Jenny told her that she wouldnt need them anyway.

There was the bitch; a lock in her nose, one in each nipple and a large ring in her tongue so she could barely talk and two tattoos, one on her stomach and the other on her back. She just cried while they drove off.



Sarah looked back at her and said, “Are we learning, yet, bitch??”


Jenny laughed and said, “I hope not. I am having too much fun.”…………………………..



To be continued:






       



       












Cindys Lessons     PART 6



Authors note:  The bitch now has a large ring going through a piercing in her tongue. She can NOT talk correctly. She has a SEVERE lisp and cant pronounce some of the letters and sounds in her speech. Please bare this in mind during the rest of this story.  Let me know what you think. Thank you.



After they got home, Jenny dragged the bitch into the house and chained her back to the bolt in the floor. Rex came to greet her while she just lay down in her bed. She petted him lightly and lay down. He didnt seem to want to fuck her. He just lay down next to her and slept.

Jenny and Sarah stripped as soon as they got into the house. Both preferred to be naked, especially when they were with each other. Sarah and Jenny stood there and stared at each other. They walked to each other and hugged. Both felt a hand reaching down and fingers slide into each others pussy. Jenny pushed away and said, “You know, you didnt finish your lunch today. You should eat everything thats put on your plate. Sarah smiled and said, “You are right. I am sorry. I wouldnt want to get sick by not eating my meat. I need my protein!”

Jenny hopped up on the table while Sarah sat down in front of her. Sarah pushed Jenny onto her back on the table and leaned forward and slowly ran her tongue from Jennys butt-hole to her belly button. The effect was immediate. Jenny tensed up and gave out a little “mew” like a small kitten. Sarah licked and sucked on her butt-hole and got it nice and wet. She shoved her finger up her butt-hole and started to lick her pussy slowly and gently. Jenny responded by trying to slide her pussy closer to Sarah. Sarah reached up and grabbed a handful of her pubic hair and gently pulled and told her to stay still or she would have to be tied down. Sarah told her that she couldnt eat properly while her food was moving around on the table. She let go of her hair and continued to lick on Jennys pussy while moving her finger around in her ass. Once again, Jenny began to wiggle around and move her pussy closer to Sarah.

Sarah smiled and seemed to be expecting this. Before Jenny could respond, she took a pair of handcuffs she had and pulled Jenny up and cuffed her hands behind her back. Jenny looked at her and told her to finish her lunch but Sarah smiled and said, “I WILL finish but I need my lunch to stay still. I cant keep chasing my lunch around the table. Wait here and dont leave the table or I might not finish. Jenny looked at her and tried to decide if she was serious. Sarah grabbed and twisted her nipples hard before she walked out of the room. Jenny saw Sarah dragging the bitch out and tying her to the tree out back. The bitch looked at Sarah, then jenny with a pleading look but said nothing. Sarah went into the living room for a while, then came back to get Jenny.

Sarah took the cuffs off her hands and attached each one of her wrists to a bolt in the ceiling so they were at about a 45 degree angle. She pulled the coffee table up under her so she could sit on it and then attached each one of her ankles so they were like her arms. Each was attached to the ceiling at a 45 degree angle like her arms. Sarah slid the coffee table under her so her weight was on the table but the straps were adjusted to the perfect height so she couldnt move much. She could wiggle around some, though. Sarah seemed to expect this and pulled two more straps and wrapped them around her and under the table. One strap was under her arms but above her tits. The other strap was around her waist. They were pulled up tight so now Jenny tied to the ceiling by all four limbs and could not move even a little bit. The straps under the coffee table were tight and kept her completely immobile. Sarah then took the ball gag and shoved into her mouth and latched it around the back of her head just as she was about t say something. Then she strapped her head down to the table also. Now she couldnt even move her head. Sarah smiled and said, “Now I can finish my lunch. I think it will stop moving around on me. I hate to keep chasing it around.”

Sarah had a wonderful view of Jennys pussy and butt-hole. She had perfect access to both and she planned to use it. Sarah licked Jennys face up one side and down the other. Jenny tried to respond but she couldnt. All she could do is stare at the ceiling and submit to whatever Sarah wanted to do to her. Jenny was a little worried but trusted Sarah completely. Jenny still felt a lot of guilt for what she had done, even though she was being expertly manipulated by the bitch, Cindy. Even if Sarah abused her, she felt she deserved every bit of it and would always submit to Sarah.

Sarah moved her tongue and mouth down to Jennys tits and began to suck and bite them. All Jenny was able to do is moan. She tried to wiggle but could not move and inch. While she was biting and nibbling on Jennys tits, Sarah began to dig her fingers into Jennys armpits and under her arms. Jenny tried to shake free. She was very ticklish and Sarah knew it. Sarah kept biting her nipples and digging her fingers into Jenny. Jenny tried to shout through her gag but all that Sarah heard was a loud groan. Sarah moved her head up and looked Jenny in the eyes and said, “Did you say something? I am still trying to finish my lunch but you keep interrupting me. I have forgotten where I was. Now I will have to start all over again.”

Sarah nibbled her tits and moved up to her face and licked all around Jennys face. She moved back down to her tits and began to bite her nipples again. While she was doing this, she again started to dig her fingers into Jennys armpits and underarms. This started Jennys groaning all over again and she tried to shout again through her gag but all that could be heard was a loud groan, again. Sarah stopped and told Jenny to be quiet or she would have to keep starting all over. This process continued for 20 more minutes because Jenny kept shouting into her gag. Finally, Jenny used all her willpower and remained silent. She was sweating and biting down hard on the gag while curling up her hands and feet. Finally Sarah moved down to her stomach and licked it all around and every so often would bite her skin. Jenny was already going wild but could do NOTHING. All she could do is let out a “mewing” sound. Sarah moved slowly down to her pussy. Sarah wanted to dive in and “gobble” it all up but forced herself to go agonizingly slow.

Sarah moved down to her butt hole and licked it to get it all wet again but Jenny own juices were beginning to flow down and get it all wet without Sarahs help. Again, Sarah shoved her figure up Jenny hole and the other finger into her pussy. She pressed her fingers together inside Jenny and moved them around and at the same time, licked around her fingers and all around Jennys pussy. Jenny was screaming as loud as she could but it came out as only a loud groan through the gag. Sarah pushed her fingers together hard and licked her fast and hard at the same time. Just as Jenny was getting close, Sarah pulled out her fingers and stopped licking her. Jenny groaned and was trying to thrash around but was still immobile. She just groaned and continued to sweat. Her pussy juices were flowing down over her ass like a river. Sarah laughed and said, “I can get all of my lunch right here as it flows out and down from your pussy. I dont need to go to the source anymore. This gives me an idea. Dont go away. Ill be right back.”

Jenny was so horny and frustrated she was about to explode. Sarah walked away but came back a couple of minutes later. Jenny could not see what she was doing but knew she was up to something. Jenny was praying that Sarah would make her cum but just lay there and screamed in frustration through the gag. Sarah took another strap and hooked it through Jenny belly strap then down under the coffee table. She tightened it up until it was almost tight against her crotch. Jenny felt Sarah begin to slide something up into her ass and pussy at the same time. Jenny knew then that Sarah was shoving a vibrator in each of her holes. Sarah then tucked them under the strap and tightened it down so they would come out. Sarah went up and looked Jenny in the eye and asked, “Do we feel full?” Jenny just looked at Sarah wide-eyed and screamed into her gag. Sarah said, “Ill take that as a yes.”  Sarah reached down and turned both vibrators on as high as they would go. All Jenny could do is close her eyes and scream. She kept trying to hump the vibrators but couldnt. She was more frustrated than she ever was in her life. Sarah whispered into her ear, “I am not really hungry but I wouldnt want you to feel left out so this should keep you busy for a while. You should know that there are fresh batteries in those and they will be going for quite some time. I have a few things I need to do. I have to send our grocery boy another email to keep him busy and I want to go take care of the bitch. Ill be back soon. Have fun and enjoy.”

Sarah left the room and pretended to leave but she stood quietly in the doorway knowing that Jenny didnt know she was there and watched her. In truth, it took all of Sarahs willpower to not lick Jennys pussy all afternoon. She loved the taste of it and needed it but this was for Jenny and Sarah told herself that she needed to make some sacrifices for her. Besides, she was enjoying watching Jenny try to scream and squirm around. She stood and watched for about ten minutes before going outside to get the bitch.

When she got to the bitch she said, “Piss bitch.” The bitch immediately emptied her bladder. Sarah said, “That was to remind you that we are still in control. You will follow me and NOT say a word! Do you understand bitch?!!” The bitch just nodded and stared at Sarah. As much as she hated being with these two, she had to admit, Sarah was a beautiful woman and she stared at her while she was unlocking her chain form the tree. Sarah yanked her to the door and pulled her to a top before they went in the house.  Sarah took a cloth and tied it tight around the bitchs eyes. Then she took two of those little foam earplugs and put them in her ears. She was now blind and deaf. She felt Sarah yank her into the house. She stumbled, a couple of times, while she was being yanked through the house. Sarah then grabbed her arm and led her down some steps. Soon the bitch felt clod concrete on her feet and knew she was in the basement.

The bitch felt Sarahs hands push down on her shoulders hard. She knew what this meant. She was to remain in that spot and NOT move. She felt chains being attached to her wrists and pulled up so that only her toes could touch the cold floor. Sarah then pulled the blindfold off and the earplugs out of her ears. She looked around and saw that she was in a small room. It was about ten feet by ten feet. The walls were made of oak and the floor was concrete. She was hanging by a steel beam in the ceiling by her wrists. The door was thick and made of the same oak as the walls and the only thing in the room was a strange looking toilet. It was stainless steel and had no tank. It only had a small “valve” like looking thing attached to it. She assumed it was to flush.



Sarah: “This is where you will stay for now, bitch. The walls and the door are twelve in oak with sound proof insulation. There is no light at all in this room and no heat. It is separate from the basement and cant be found even if someone was looking for it. I have spent a great deal of money to have this room made. You can scream you lungs out for all I care. A bomb could go off in here and the neighbors wouldnt hear a thing. There is one good thing about this room. I have had some plumbing go through the floor in here with hot water so you shouldnt freeze to death down here. Think about your selfish life for a while you hang here in dark silence. I have more important things to do than take care of your worthless skin. See you soon, bitch.”


Bitch (crying): “Pees. Pees domp weev mea heew. I wiw boo whapewer you fay.”


Sarah: “I told you not to speak! Now you will be down here an extra day! Not that you will be able to tell how long that is. There is no light at all down here and no sound will reach you so you will have no sense of time and will have no idea how long you will be left down here. I will be back soon to untie you but you will still remain in here until we let you out.”


Sarah left and the bitch heard the sound of a very large and heavy door slam shut and a large latch being used to lock it. She was left in the dark, hanging by her wrists. The silence and the darkness was the worst thing she had ever experienced in her life. She just cried, knowing that the rest of her life was going to be spent in this silent darkness.

Sarah went back upstairs and walked over to Jenny. She looked at her wide eyed and full of sweat. Sarah leaned down and kissed her on the forehead. Sarah asked, “Did you cum, yet, honey? Blink once for yes and two for no.” Jenny was traveling through an area of insanity but was present enough to hear her and she blinked twice. Sarah said, “Thats too bad. Ill have to give you more time to make sure you are satisfied. I wouldnt want to cheat you like I did before. Ill be right back.” Jenny just kept blinking “no”. Sarah looked at her and said, “I dont have any idea what youre saying, dear but you can tell me later.” As Sarah left she reached down and pinched Jennys nipples rather hard for a minute, then walked away. Jenny was left there, screaming as before with two vibrators buzzing inside her within an inch of each other.

Sarah watched Jenny again in the doorway. Again, it took all of her willpower to not go in and gobble up Jennys pussy. She wanted it in the worst way but knew Jenny needed this more. Sarah would always put Jenny ahead of anyone else. She smiled and wondered what this was like.

The bitch was put away because she didnt disserve to be anywhere near them while Jenny and her were together. Sarah was determined to let her know where she would spend the rest of her life if she didnt start learning soon. Sarah still wanted to take her out in public for some fun first but for now she had their little grocery boy to play with.

She sat down at the computer and logged in. She noticed that he had responded to her question about the surface pressure on Mars. He said it was 300 MB. Sarah wasnt sure but she knew that was a close number. She smiled and wrote to him, “How much steel was used to make the Eiffel Tower in Paris, France? I have a nice surprise for you, also. If you want to simply masturbate, it will only cost you $450. This is a onetime offer and only good until the end of the month. Were feeling generous so let us know. XOXO.”

Sarah went back to Jenny to check on her. She peeked form the doorway and smiled at what she saw. There Jenny was. She was still struggling against her bonds and screaming and snorting. Sarah went up to her and licked her face and asked her if she had cum, yet. Jenny blinked her eyes twice and kept blinking twice for no. 


Sarah: “I wonder if you really DO want to cum. I set this all up just for you. The least you could do for me is to cum at least once. Are you trying to disappoint me? DO you really want to cum or are you just playing with me?”


Jenny blinked her eyes twice, then once, then twice again. Jenny was completely lost. She kept blinking without knowing what she was blinking for. She was desperate. Sarah moved down to her tits and began to bite and suck on Jennys nipples. The more Jenny grunted and let out her groaning screams, the harder Sarah bit and sucked. Jenny was sweating, jiggling, groaning and grunting mass of completely out of control horny flesh. Sarah could still feel the vibrators going as she moved down to Jennys pussy and licked and bit around the straps. Sarah had them placed perfectly. She knew just how to place them so Jenny wouldnt cum but would still be driven crazy with lust. Sarah was determined to keep her on the edge much longer than the last time. She kept biting around her pussy and licking up her juices. They were flowing like a river down her ass and onto the coffee table. She licked up a mouth full and with her tongue and spread it all over Jennys face. She forced quite a bit up her nose so all she could smell was her own juices. Sarah saw that Jenny was still blinking in the pattern of either “yes” or “no”. Sarah giggled and said, “Honey, I think youre trying to tell me something but I dont understand. You will simply have to wait until you cum to tell me. Im becoming disappointed. I set this up just for you and you wont cum for me. Please try harder…….for me?”

Jenny kept blinking and screaming into her gag. She was desperate. Sarah walked away and told Jenny that shed be back in a while and that she would give her more time to keep trying to cum for her. Sarah said, “Dont worry, dear, I have more batteries if those dont last long enough for you. I know you wouldnt want to disappoint me.” She kissed her once on each nipple and walked away. Jenny couldnt see her because of her head tied down and assumed she left her alone. She screamed at the top of her lungs into the gag but most of her yelling was completely muffled by the gag. All she could do is lay there with those vibrators humming away.

Sarah stopped and watched her for a few minutes at the edge of the room. She almost went back to satisfy her but didnt. She wanted to go back and “gobble her up” but knew this was a much better way to please her and her pleasure would ALWAYS be more important than anything. She smiled and admitted to herself that it was fun to watch her slowly climb her way to an orgasm, then slip back down every time she got close. She planned to keep this up for a while yet. She left and went back downstairs with a bowl of food for the bitch.

The bitch was hanging there and the only way to keep the weight off her wrists was to stand on her toes but she couldnt stay on her toes very long either and she couldnt feel her hands anymore. At first she started to yell but realized that it was pointless. No one would hear here even if they were standing on the other side of the wall with their ear to the wall. She tried to struggle out of her bonds but it was pointless too. She was secured to the ceiling and she could do nothing about it until her hands fell off do to the lack of circulation.

Sarah opened the door to the room and despite the fact that there was not much light entering the room, the bitch was temporarily blinding due to the fact that the room was in absolute darkness. Sarah closed the door just enough to let light in but not enough to let the bitch see out. She smiled. This was just another way of driving the bitch crazy. She could see light and an open door but couldnt reach it. Sarah put the bowl down on the floor and walked over to untie the bitch from the ceiling.


Sarah: “I will untie you. I do not want you crippled, yet but you will stay in here for a while until we decide to let you out, again. One way or the other, you will learn.”


Bitch: “vomeon wiw be wooking por me. I wiw gepf oup foon an you poo wiw ge whap you beverv!”


Sarah: “I can barely understand you. You better make use of you time here and practice talking straight or no one will understand you at all. It would be fun to let you use the phone to try and get help, though. LOL. No one is looking for you. Dont you get it? You have been a complete bitch to everyone. No one gives a shit where you are and why you are gone. Your “so called friends” dont even miss you and you have isolated yourself COMPLETELY from your family. They would NEVER know if you were gone or not.

I have left you some food. It is soft for now because your tongue is not quite healed yet. I would keep turning your ring and locks if I were you or you might lose your tongue, nipples, or nose. That is your toilet to use and your ONLY source of water. Feel free to drink as much as you want but dont forget to flush before you drink. LOL. We are not without some kind of mercy for you, though. Here is your bed to sleep on and a blanket to use. We will see you soon….MAYBE.”


Bitch: “fom gay I wiw ge ouw of hew an uo poo wiw be sowwy.”


Sarah: “We have a long way to go with you. You better start learning. REMEMBER, YOU A “NON-PERSON”! YOU DONT EXIST!

When you are finished eating, slide you bowl through the little trap door along side of the main door and we will feed you again when we want to. If you dont slide it out, you will not be fed until you do.  We will push the bowl back through when we feed you. Dont try to lean down to see out. There is a small double door so you cant see out and besides, it is pitch black and you cant see anyway. To make things even more fun, there is an infrared camera on you at all times. We can see the entire room. We can have fun watching you and you will never know where the camera is or if we are watching you at any given time. Have a nice dinner and relax. I will see you later…maybe.”


Sarah closed the door and went back upstairs. The bitch was left in complete darkness and silence again. While crawling to find her food she knocked the bowl over and it plopped on the floor. She just said, “pfip!” and scraped it off the floor and began to eat it. It was dog food again but this stuff was that mushy stuff and smelled and tasted twice as bad as the hard stuff but she was so hungry she could have eaten her blanket. She gobbled it up, and then went over to find the toilet in the darkness. She stuck her had into the water and drank her fill of water. It tasted so good and more so because it had no piss in it. It tasted like campaign to her. She felt like she was trapped in the dessert for two weeks and was so damn thirsty that she must have drunk two gallons.

Sarah looked back at the door and hoped that the bitch would learn. She honestly wanted to make her realize the pain she caused everyone. It was not only Jenny (Although she could have slowly strangled her for that) but she was a shallow person and was completely useless to anyone. She was such a selfish person, she was convinced that she was the center of the universe and that everyone was here to serve her. Sarah vowed that she would teach the bitch, ONE WAY OR THE OTHER!

Sarah stopped in the doorway to the living room and watched Jenny for a few minutes. The sweat was pouring off her onto the coffee table. This had been going on for two hours now and Sarah decided to let her cum, eventually but only after a little more teasing. She went over to Jenny and rubbed her hand over the strap on her ass and pussy. Jenny could only feel the pressure but not the touch of her hand. She still had a lot of fight and once again screamed as loud as she could and at the same time pulling at her bonds as hard a she could. Sarah tapped heavily on the strap over her pussy while pinching her nipples. Jenny just kept screaming and every muscle in her body tensed up. Sarah could see the veins stand out on every muscle in her body. Sarah looked her in the eyes and told her that her batteries hadnt worn out yet so she would give her more time to cum. Jenny shuddered in her bonds and kept screaming. Sarah licked her slowly across the face and noticed she was blinking her eyes in sequences of “ones” and “twos”.


Sarah: “Ill be back in a little while. Youd better hurry and cum before your batteries wear out. If I have to put another set of batteries in, you will have to wait until next time. Before I go, I think Ill take a nice big drink of your pussy.”


Sarah went down to Jennys pussy, which was covered by the strap and licked all the juice off her ass and from around the strap. Jenny just kept fighting and screaming because she could feel Sarahs licking but just off to the side of her pussy. Sarah made no contact with it at all. Jenny was slowly going insane with lust.

Sarah licked Jennys nose and said, “Here is a taste of what your missing, honey. Hurry up and cum so you can enjoy this too.” Sarah walked away, smiling. Sarah saw Jennys eyes as she walked away. Jenny was not seeing anything anymore. She was wildly looking around for satisfaction but was seeing nothing at the same time. She just kept screaming and struggling. Sarah stood in the doorway and watched. Her struggles were useless but she was no longer conscious of the world around her.

Sarah sat down on the couch and watched Jenny for a couple of minutes and realized that she was getting so very hot and horny. She just stared at Jennys body with lust and desire. She reached her hand down to her own pussy and began to rub it slowly. She stared at Jenny. Her frustrations were making her so horny; she was dripping as she was fingering her own pussy. Sarah decided to tease Jenny a little more.


Sarah (while rubbing and fingering herself): “My god Jenny, This feels so good. I wish you would cum so you could taste this. My pussy is so wet; it is dripping all over my hand.”


Sarah walked over to Jenny and rubbed her pussy juice in Jennys face and said: “See what your missing, honey. I hate to have to cum by myself but you are leaving me no choice. You seem to be enjoying your vibrators so much you keep putting off Cumming. I hope you will at least listen to me cum. I am feeling neglected over here. Hurry up and cum so you can join me.”


Jenny just kept screaming but it was obvious that she heard every word that Sarah had said. Sarah sat back down and continued to rub her own pussy.


Sarah: “OH GOD, This feels good! MMMMMMM….OH GOD, Jenny…OH GOD! I wish this was your tongue. My juices are flowing almost as much as yours are! MY GOD! Im getting close. IM GOING TO CUM! AHHHHHHH……..IM CUMMING!!! AHHHHHHHHH!!!”


It didnt take long for Sarah to cum. She was an expert at making women cum and Jenny was making her so damn hot. Sarah made a mental note of this fact. Having Jenny shake and scream on the edge of an orgasm for so long and not being able to cum was hot!

Sarah slowly got up and looked Jenny in the eye and said, “You missed it honey. I hope you heard, though. I feel hurt that you are more interested in those vibrators than me.” Jenny just looked at her with madness in her eyes. Whether she heard or not, Sarah didnt know but when Sarah checked the batteries in the vibrators were almost dead, now. Sarah took the straps off that were holding the vibrators in and slowly pulled them out so she would make Jenny cum just yet. She brought them up and held them in front of Jenny and said, “See here. These are your vibrators. They give up easily. I would never give up until you “came” at least once.” Sarah took the vibrator that was in Jennys pussy and slowly pushed it into her mouth so Jenny could watch. She slowly sucked on it lick she was giving it a blow job.


Sarah: “This is nice, Jenny. I can get a nice big mouthful of your pussy juice on this dripping vibrator. These things are not your friends, Jenny. They cant appreciate your pussy and cant make you cum, either.”


Jenny just stared at Sarah as she gave the vibrator a nice Blow Job. Before Sarah put it down she rubbed it across Jennys nose. Jenny just inhaled and was huffing through her nose like she was taking her last breath. She mewed at Sarah with the most pleading look in her eyes. Sarah reached down and wiped her hand across her own pussy and rubbed her own juice over Jennys nose.


Sarah: “See honey, this what your missing. Dont you like the taste of my pussy?”


Jenny just kept blinking her eyes, “yes”, and then “no”. She was insane with lust.



Sarah kissed her on the gag in her mouth. All Jenny could do is moan. She wasnt even able to kiss back. She was on the edge of sanity. Sarah moved her way down to Jenny nipples and bit and nibbled on them for what seemed like an hour to Jenny but was in reality only about 5 minutes. Sarah licked her way down her stomach and spent another 5 minutes kissing and licking her stomach. She moved back up and started all over, biting and nibbling her nipples for another 5 minutes. Jenny was screaming at the top of her lungs and every muscle in her body was trying to break free of her bonds. Sarah licked all the way down to Jennys pussy in one long lick. She moved her tongue into Jennys butt and pushed it in and out. If it was possible for Jenny to become more insane she would have.

Finally Sarah took her tongue and touched Jennys pussy with it but despite Jennys condition, it still wasnt enough to push her over the edge. Sarah blew gently on her pussy. Jenny just continued to scream. Then Sarah decided she wanted Jenny. It had been all she could do to not take her a long time ago. Sarah wanted Jennys pussy almost as much as Jenny needed to cum right now.

Sarah suddenly shoved her tongue up Jennys pussy and while pushing it in and out, she put her mouth over her clit and made a suction seal and sucked as hard as she could. She was moving her tongue in and out and wiggling her lips and mouth across Jennys entire pussy.

Jenny let out one big long scream and was shooting her juices right into Sarahs mouth. Sarah loved it and almost couldnt keep up. Jenny tensed up and had several orgasms in a row. If Jenny wasnt tied down she would have launched herself into orbit. After the longest and loudest scream she had made so far, suddenly she went limp.

Sarah looked up at her and saw that she had passed out but was ok. Sarah was a little surprised but saw that she was breathing and seemed to be ok, even though she had passed out.

Sarah took all of the straps off Jenny and noticed she was still “out”. She picked her up and lay her on the couch and sat down with Jennys head on her thighs. Sarah Held her head and was petting her every once in a while when she felt Jenny stir a little. Jenny grabbed Sarahs thigh with both hands, kissed it, mewed something, and then laid her head back down and slept, while holding onto Sarahs thigh. Sarah looked down and closed her eyes and fell asleep, herself.

About an hour later, Jenny began to awake. She realized her head was resting in the one place in the world where she was completely at peace. She looked up at Sarah sleeping face and saw a single tear running down her cheek. She just lay there with her head up, watching Sarah sleep. She truly was the most beautiful woman in the world. Jenny started to reach up to touch her face and to see why she seemed to be crying, and then stopped. She wanted to just lay there and look at Sarah and watch her. If she was crying, Jenny wanted to make it better but if she wasnt, she didnt want to disturb her sleep. She was so beautiful.

Jenny just stared at her and about thirty minutes later, Sarah opened her eyes and looked down at Jenny. Jenny stared for a few seconds when tears began to run down Sarahs cheeks. Jenny kissed Sarah on the stomach when Sarah turned away and continued to cry.


Jenny: “Whats wrong? Why are you crying?”


Crying, Sarah said: “I have betrayed you and taken advantage of your love.”


Jenny: “What do you mean? You have given me the most wonderful gift in the world. No one could give me the feelings you just did. I am the luckiest girl in the world to have you.”


Sarah: “I was beginning to enjoy your frustration and misery just now. I meant to pleasure you and not take advantage of you. I am sorrier than I can ever be. I have hurt the one I love the most in the world. Please forgive me. Please?


Jenny pulled Sarah back to her and held her face up to hers and said: “You have given me more pleasure than I could even describe. The last few hours are proof of that. No one on earth has ever had an orgasm like that and you are the only one that could have done that because I love you. I have always and always will want to please you too. For you to have pleasure in me in any way pleases me and there is no gilt to feel. I will always be completely devoted to you in every way. I am begging YOU, please return to me. I need you. I love you.”


Sarah kept crying and lowered her head onto Jennys lap and hugged her around the waist. Through tear filled eyes she said: “Thank you. I will never do that again and take pleasure in you misery. Your pleasure will always be more important than mine.” Jenny gently smacked Sarah on the head and said, “Stop talking foolish. You had better do that again. I dont deserve you. I will never be able to give to you what you have given me but you OWE me the chance to try, even if it takes forever!”

Sarah got up and kissed Jenny. They both pushed back and just stared at each other bodies up and down for over a minute. Jenny smiled and said, “You were actually enjoying teasing me like that? You owe me! SIT DOWN AND SPREAD UM!!” Sarah sat down, spread her legs and was happy again. She was convinced that she didnt deserve Jennys mouth and tongue but was glad Jenny forgave her. Jenny saw the look in Sarahs eyes and yelled at her, “STOP IT! THERE IS NOTHING TO FORGIVE! I WANT TO PLEASURE YOU MORE THAN ANYTHING IN ANY WAY THAT I AM ABLE! NOW SIT BACK AND ENJOY THIS OR I WILL BE ANGRY!”

Jenny pushed her back and started at her tits. She bit hard on her nipples while jabbing her fingers into Sarahs armpits. Sarah jumped. She was ticklish. Jenny grabbed her nipples hard and told her in a stern voice that shed better sit still or she would get a spanking. It would not be a pleasant one, either. It would hurt! Sarah used all her willpower to sit still. She was tempted to move, just to let Jenny punish her but Jenny would know and truly be disappointed with her. She sat still but it was agony. Jenny continued to bite her nipples hard while jamming her fingers and knuckles into Sarahs armpits. Every time Jenny felt Sarah move a little she would bite down harder on her nipples. Jenny continued to shove one hand into her armpits while biting on her nipples. She reached down and grabbed a handful of pubic hair and yanked it out. Sarah jumped and let out a scream. Jenny laughed and told her she need that spanking now because she ruined her fun.

Jenny grabbed one nipple and pulled Sarah off the couch. She told her to lie on the floor and handcuff one hand to a bolt in the floor. Jenny handcuffed the other hand to the same bolt and then strapped her ankles to two other bolts so that she was pulled tight on her back with arms over head and legs pulled tight and spread out in the other direction. Before Sarah could say anything, Jenny shoved that ball gag in her mouth. Sarah looked at Jenny and was a little worried. Jenny had strange look on her face. She thought to herself, did Jenny want to get even?

Jenny laughed and told Sarah that it was now her turn to enjoy HER misery. Jenny began by bending down and licking Sarahs pussy and holding her own just out of Sarahs reach. Sarah had a wonderful view of Jennys pussy but couldnt do anything about it. Jenny worked slowly. She kept bringing Sarah right to the edge, then stopping. After about an hour of teasing, Jenny went up and strattled Sarahs face and began to finger herself, so that her pussy was just above Sarahs face. She couldnt reach but had a close up view. Jenny fingered herself slowly and soon was dripping juice all over Sarahs face. It was running over her mouth and over her nose. It was running so much into her nose; she coughed a little through her nose and hoped she wouldnt choke. Jennys pussy juice was so good. She could smell it but not taste it because of the gag. For Sarah, this was so very frustrating.

Jenny began to moan and scream. She shoved her fingers as far up her pussy as she could and used her thumb to rub her clit. She squeezed her fingers together just as she shuddered in a wonderful orgasm. It was nothing near what she had before but she wanted Sarah to feel what it was like for Jenny to have some pleasure without Sarahs involvement. Her juice ran all over Sarahs face and she tried to lean up to at least shove her nose into Jennys pussy but Jenny would have no part of it. She lifted her ass up just out of Sarahs reach. Jenny leaned forward again and began to lick and suck on Sarahs pussy all over again. She brought Sarah right to the edge a few more times, then quit. Jenny turned around and lowered her pussy onto Sarahs pussy and began to grind them together. As she was gyrating around, she looked Sarah in the eye to watch when she was getting close again. Every time she did, Jenny lifted her ass up and smiled at Sarah. Sarah was beginning to go crazy. She wiggled and squirmed but it didnt matter. Like Jenny earlier, she could do nothing.

Jenny smiled down at her and said, “How does it feel? It feels frustratingly good, doesnt it? Now I will ask you, do you want to cum?” Sarah nodded her head, though she knew Jenny wouldnt let her cum. This truly was frustrating beyond belief.

Jenny took some more straps and tied them to her wrist with the other ends to the ceiling. She pulled them as tight as they would go against the handcuffs that held her to the floor. While she had a hold on the straps, Jenny unlocked the handcuffs. She pulled the straps up too quickly for Sarah to respond. Now Sarah was tied to the ceiling with her hands straight up and her legs were still wide apart. Jenny went and got the two vibrators and showed them to Sarah. She said, “You will be happy to know that I have put new batteries in these so you will be able to enjoy them for a long time. Sarah just shook her head “no”. Jenny laughed and said, “Dont you want to cum? These two little friends of ours will be just the trick.”

Jenny backed away and began to fuck herself with one of the vibrators so Sarah could see her. Sarah just grunted but could do nothing but watch. It didnt take long before Jenny came and had her juices all over the vibrator. She said to Sarah, “That felt good. You will enjoy this.” Jenny then shoved the other one into her pussy, which was very wet. Jenny shoved it in and out for couple of minutes before she came again. She now had two very wet vibrators in her hands. She waved them under Sarahs nose and noticed that Sarah inhaled deeply.  Jenny laughed and said, “Oh no, you dont. You will not get to taste these at all.” Jenny shoved the two vibrators into Sarah; one in her ass and the other in her pussy. She took the strap and used it to hold them in like Sarah had done to her. Just as she tightened up the strap, she turned them both on. Sarah jerked in pleasure and moaned. They felt wonderful but she knew they wouldnt make her cum the way they were put in. She just got hornier and wetter.

Jenny went and got the leather strap that they had and waved it under Sarahs nose. She told Sarah, “This is your punishment for wiggling around while I was simply trying to please you. I got the impression that you didnt want me to lick your pussy when I enjoy it so very much. You say one thing and do another. Now is my time to enjoy your misery.” Sarah shook her head “no” but Jenny just pinched her nipples hard and told her to be a big girl and take her punishment.

Jenny moved behind her and swung the leather strap at Sarahs ass. She didnt swing hard but the loud “crack” and Sarahs reaction made her realize that it hurt. She swung again, harder this time. She hit her on the ass five more times before taking a little break to tease Sarah a little more. Jenny went around looking Sarah in the eyes. She saw that Sarah was sweating a lot and crying a little. Jenny asked, “Does it hurt? Dont you want to please me?” Sarah shook her head “yes and no”. Jenny faked a confused look and said, “Cant you make up your mind? Maybe you need a little more to help.”

Jenny moved behind her and swung the strap again and again. Sarah was crying and screaming into the gag and her ass was VERY red! Jenny leaned up to her ear and said, “Your ass is getting very red. Do you want me to let it alone for a while?” Sarah shook her head “no”. Jenny said, “OK. I will give your ass a break for a little while.” Sarah regretted nodding her head as soon as she did it. With Jennys teasing, the vibrator and the pain, she was going crazy.

Jenny walked around back of her and swung the strap again but this time she hit the back of Sarahs thighs. Sarah screamed and cried into the gag. She was groaning is little grunts. She was trying to say something but couldnt. Jenny just laughed and said, “I do not know what you want so I will have to just please myself for now. You DID say that my pleasure was more important, didnt you?” Sarah didnt answer her this time. Jenny said, “So now you tell me you lied? So I am not that important to you, now?!” Sarah nodded “yes”.


Jenny: “So what does that mean? It means you were lying?”


Sarah shook her head, “no”.


Jenny: “Now you tell me that I am not important to you??”


Sarah shook her head “no”, then “yes”.  It was so frustrating. She was so horny and the pain was incredible but pleasant in a weird way.


Jenny: “You dont seem to be able to make up your mind at all. I think that means you were lying to me. You need more convincing, I think. You deserve twenty more spankings for lying.”


Sarah shook her head “no” but Jenny told her it was too late. She must live with her lies and she swung the strap again. After twenty more strokes with the strap, Sarah was blubbering like a baby into her gag. Jenny went around front and asked, “Have you learned your lesson, yet or do you want me to continue?” Sarah shook her head “yes”, then “no”. Jenny grabbed her by the nipples and said, “You still cant seem to get it right. First “yes” then “no”. You cant even decide whether to lie to me or not.”

Jenny went around to the side of Sarah and swung the strap onto her tits, this time. She didnt hit quite so hard but the effect was the same. Her tits were much more sensitive. After a couple of hits, Jenny came up and gently tapped the strap on the strap that was covering Sarahs pussy and holding the vibrators in her ass and pussy. Sarah cried and moaned at the same time. Jenny told her that she was a confused person. She didnt know what she wanted or didnt want. Jenny said, “I guess I will just have to do what makes me feel good since you cant seem to figure out what you want.”

Sarah shook her head “no”. As Jenny swung the strap at her tits again, she said, “I am not listening to you anymore. You cant make up your mind.”

The strap landed on her tits with a loud “crack”! Sarah could only cry. It hurt so very badly and the vibrators were driving her crazy with lust. Soon Sarahs tits were all red and her head just hung down while she moaned. Jenny told her that if she was quiet, she would take the gag out but if she made ANY noise at all, she would start all over again with her spanking. Sarah nodded “yes” while Jenny took the gag out. Jenny said, “You have already lied several times but if you lie again, you will be punished again. Do you understand??!” Sarah nodded “yes”.

Sarah almost cried out loud but caught herself in time. Her tears just ran down her cheeks. She pulled the strap that was holding the vibrators ion and pulled them out with a quiet squish. Jenny noted that Sarah was VERY wet because of her spanking and smiled. Then she took the straps on her wrists and ankles off and caught her as she fell. Sarah went to the floor with a thump but she still remained quiet. Jenny helped her to the couch and ordered her to stay there and be perfectly still. Sarah just lay there. It hurt lying on her sore tits but was better than hanging by the ceiling. She thought a lot about what she did before to Jenny and convinced herself that she deserved this.

Jenny came back and told Sarah to close her eyes. Sarah suddenly felt a hand on her ass and flinched. It was not pain. This touch was cool and soothing. Jenny was gently rubbing some ointment on her ass. It felt so good. Sarah was praying it wouldnt leave scares but wouldnt be surprised. She was wrong in finding pleasure in Jennys frustrations and anguish. Jenny kept rubbing the cool, soothing ointment in. Her touch felt like heaven and she let out a quiet mewing sound in relief. Suddenly she stopped and began to cry again. Jenny told her to remain quiet. Jenny gently smacked her on the ass and reminded her to be quiet. It didnt really sting much. Jenny just rubbing the ointment in for a while then got up and told Sarah to lie there and be quiet. She didnt have to tell her. Sarah was feeling better and was enjoying Jennys touch. Jenny came back with a towel and told Sarah to lie on her back and close her eyes. Jenny began to apply the same ointment on her tits. Sarah was enjoying this even more. Jennys touch was heaven on her tits. Sarah was praying that she would rub her pussy too but then told herself that she didnt deserve it.

Jenny told Sarah to lie on her side and close her eyes and rest. Sarah was glad she told her that. She was so very horny but tired too. She ignored her horniness and closed her eyes and rested. Soon she was simply tired.

She suddenly felt lips on hers and when she opened her eyes, she saw Jenny kissing her. She was confused but kissed her back. Whatever happened, Sarah would always love her, even if she was angry with her. Jenny touched her on the face and said, “NOW will you get that stupid gilt out of your silly head! Besides, I was enjoying spanking you. It felt good to know that I could help you by convincing you that you are being stupid and that I will always enjoy pleasing you, even if you take pleasure in endlessly teasing me like earlier.”

Sarah just nodded. The pain reminded her that she was still a little afraid and that Jenny was in charge, now. Jenny laughed, hugged her and told her that shed better talk to her or she would get another spanking. Sarah laughed and cried at the same time and told her that she understood what she meant and that the gilt was gone.


Jenny: “You still owe me one. Normally I would tell you to sit down but I have a better idea. Come over here.”


Jenny lay on her back and pulled Sarahs ass over her head and told her to lower that beautiful pussy down so she could lick it clean. Sarah lowered her pussy onto Jennys mouth and at the same time leaned forward and began to lick Jennys pussy at the same time. Jenny reached up and pinched her pussy lips. Sarah jumped up while Jenny told her that this was still part of her punishment and that she would have to wait. Jenny said, “This is my turn. You will have to earn your chance. Now sit still or I will have to punish you all over again.” Sarah wanted to please Jenny much more than she wanted it, herself but still, she gently lowered her pussy onto Jenny face and enjoyed her tongue. Normally she would have felt guilty again but she now knew better.

Each time Jenny ate Sarahs pussy, Sarah thought that she was getting better and better at it. Jenny was beginning to be an expert at teasing just like she was. Jenny didnt tease this time, though. She wanted to have a good taste of Sarahs pussy and gobble it up. Strangely, they both wanted to please the other more than they wanted to be pleased. They both knew it but never admitted it to themselves.

Sarah felt Jennys tongue slide into her pussy and was enjoying every minute of it. She DID want to please Jenny by enjoying it but that was not the reason. Sarah was truly hooked on Jenny. Sarah wanted Jenny to make her cum. She started to moan and hump Jennys face. Jenny reached up and dug her fingernails into Sarahs ass and told her to stay still and do what shes been told or the punishment would begin all over. Sarah jumped and yelped when Jenny grabbed her ass. Her ass was still very red and sore. She closed her eyes and forced herself to stay still even though Jennys nails hurt like hell. It didnt take long for the pleasure of Jennys tongue to overcome the pain of her sore ass.

Jenny didnt hold back. Sarah quickly started to cum all over Jennys face. She moaned and stiffened up while trying her best to stay still. She tried but it was not possible. Jenny was pretty much an expert at pussy licking and Sarah decided that Cumming from that beautiful tongue was worth another spanking. She pushed her pussy into Jennys mouth and had two more orgasms. Finally she moaned and fell on the floor and just lay there. Jenny looked at her and smiled. She was glad that Sarah had cum three times and not just once. Jenny truly wanted her gilt to flow out of her like her juices just did. Jenny rolled over and kissed Sarah with her face still wet. Her and Sarah both got a nice mouthful of Sarahs juices.


Jenny: “You didnt stay still, did you?”


Sarah: “I am sorry. I tried but you are becoming an expert at licking my pussy and I couldnt stay still. I have said it many times but and I will say it again; any time you want me, I am yours. I will accept any punishment you want to give me. It was worth it.”


Jenny: “I do not want to punish you. I DID enjoy spanking you, though. You ass is a beautiful shade of red. It goes with your hair. LOL. You got a spanking for thinking and saying all those stupid things about being guilty. My desire is to please you in ANY way that I can. I want you to enjoy me in any way that you can think of, even if you think it will hurt me. I love you and trust you completely!”


Sarah: “I will always be happy with you. I want you to enjoy me also in ANY way you wish to. Never be concerned about my pain. If it pleases you, it will please me. Truly I do not want another spanking, though and I would do anything you want just to avoid it. It hurts a lot. I love you too and trust you completely also.”


Jenny told Sarah to lie down on the couch face down again. She began to spread the ointment on her ass, again. Sarah just lay there and moaned and mumbled something about how good it felt but it was lost in her moans and Jenny didnt understand the words. She DID understand their meaning, though and smiled. Jenny rubbed it all over Sarahs ass and when it was covered well enough, she ran her hand down the crack of Sarahs ass. She pushed her thumb into her ass and fingers into her pussy and began to move them around and squeeze them together. Sarah just moaned and pushed her ass up into Jennys fingers. Jenny worked them in and out faster and asked Sarah, “If I continue, will you accept twenty more hits on the ass with the strap?” Sarah didnt even think twice. She moaned “yes” for her response. Jenny said, “OK, its a deal.” She worked her fingers faster and faster. Sarah started to hump her ass against her hand again while Jenny moved her other hand up to Sarahs clit and rubbed and pinched it in rhythm with her other hand. Just as Sarah was going to cum Jenny quickly stopped.


Sarah: “Please dont stop.”


Jenny: “Its time for my payment. Get up so I can strap you to the ceiling again.”


Sarah got up slowly. She was still grinding her legs together trying to stimulate herself as she went over to the ceiling bolts and let Jenny tie her back up. She was now pulled up tight by the arms and her legs were once again spread out but tied tight to the floor bolts. Sarah was completely unable to move.


Jenny: “Lets see, I said twenty hits, did I?”


Sarah: “Yes. Twenty.”


Jenny: “Things have changed, though. First you moved on the couch and I had to chase your pussy around to keep up. Next, you told me not to stop. I never said anything about making you cum. I told you that I would continue but not for how long. The way I see it, I get five additional spanks for each of your little indiscretions.”


Sarah: “Please dont. It hurts a lot and it still hurts from before.”


Jenny: “Now, it will be five more. Are you going to keep arguing with me? If my arm gets too tired, I will rest and give you five hits for each time I have to rest again. Lets see, if my addition is correct, you are up to thirty, now, right?”


Sarah (whimpering a little): “Yes, you are right, thirty”


Jenny: “I want to concentrate on your spanking so you will need to count. Dont lose track or we will have to start over. Here we go.”


Jenny swung the strap with moderate effort. She wanted to pace herself. Sarah yelled at the first hit. Jenny stopped for a moment and grabbed the gag and shoved it into her mouth. She told Sarah that she didnt want to listen to her whining so now she didnt have to count. Her only job was to stand there. Jenny swung again with only moderate effort. All Sarah could do is flinch a little and scream into her gag. Her ass still hurt from before so now it was twice as bad. Jenny swung several more times and got up to fifteen. She was getting tired and Sarah just kept screaming into the gag.

Jenny went in front of Sarah and told her she was getting tired and wanted to take a break. Sarah remembered what she said about adding five more hits if she had to rest. Sarah cried and shook her head “no” quite clearly. Jenny asked, “DO you want me to continue smacking you on the ass, then? Do you want me to hit you harder, then?” Sarah defiantly didnt want her to rest but didnt want her to hit harder but there was no way to answer correctly so she just shook her “yes”.


Jenny: “OK, you want me to hit you harder. I will try but I will get tired quicker.”


Jenny moved back and hit Sarah ten more times on the ass as hard as she could. She really was getting tired but didnt have to rest, yet. Jenny switched hands and told Sarah that she was still good and asked Sarah, “If you need a rest, I can wait for a while but it will cost you five more hits. Do you want to have a break for a while?” Sarah shook her head “no”. Jenny told her that she must be enjoying the spankings. Every time she wants to stop, Sarah wouldnt let her. Sarah just cried into the gag.

Jenny stepped back and continued to hit Sarah. She moved down her thighs and up her back a little bit. She didnt want any permanent scares. Jenny truly loved to stare at Sarahs body. Every time she did, she wanted to lick and kiss it all over.

Finally Jenny swung the thirty fifth and last stroke on Sarahs ass. Jenny undid Sarahs straps and grabbed her just as she would have fallen to the floor. She was crying into her gag and hung onto Jenny for support. Jenny asked, “If I remove the gag, will you be silent?” Sarah just nodded “yes” and leaned on Jenny while she was lead to the couch. Jenny lay her down on her back like before and once again rubbed the ointment all over her back where she was red.

Sarah almost said “thank you” but caught herself. She was afraid of that strap. It was so very painful. She just lay in silence, letting out a little mewing sound every so often. Jenny giggled and told her it was ok to talk. She was getting no more spankings……..today.



Sarah: “Please dont spank me again. It hurts so very much. Thank you for the ointment. It feels wonderful. Thank you.”


Jenny: “Of course, it hurts, silly. Thats the whole idea of getting a spanking. I was simply trying to teach you how to listen to me a little closer, thats all. I feel bad when I think you arent paying any attention to me.”


Sarah: “I promise I will listen closer to you. I am sorry.”


Jenny: “See? That is all I wanted. Now we can get on with things. Where is the bitch, by the way?”


Sarah: “I put her in the room below. I never want her around when we are together. She still doesnt understand.”


Jenny: “Thank you. I do not want her around, either. As far as Im concerned, she can stay down there for the rest of her life.”


Sarah: “That is tempting and she WILL spend a lot of time down there but I want to have fun with her first. Dont you? We still have our grocery boy to play with also but only when he has $500 so we will not be able to play with him very much.”


Jenny: “You are right. I DO want to play with her too. Can I see her?”


Sarah: “Sure. I have a camera in the room. We can watch her as much as we want to. Come see.”


Sarah led Jenny to the den and knelt down in front of the computer while Jenny stood behind her to see how she could use the computer to watch the bitch. Sarah wouldnt be sitting for a while. Her ass hurt a LOT! Soon the window popped open and they both saw the bitch just laying on her little bed looking up at the darkness. Jenny giggled and said, “She belongs in there. It is a good punishment for what she has done.” Sarah agreed but reminded Jenny that she needed to learn and besides, she wanted to have a little fun with her.

Jenny agreed and asked how the grocery boy was doing. Sarah told her about the last question about the Eiffel tower. When she signed into the email account, he had already answered her. It was another answer that Sarah didnt know exactly but it must have been close. Jenny entered the next question; how long would it take a radio signal to reach the planet “Pluto”? Sarah and Jenny noted the time and signed off. He had twelve hours to answer.



Sarah laughed, “PLUTO???”


Jenny laughed back and said, “It was the only thing I could think of right away and I have always been interested in astronomy. What will we do, now?”


Sarah: “We need to think of something fun to do with the bitch. She will be more cooperative now that she knows what it feels like to be locked up in that dark room. “


Sarah and Jenny went back to the living room and lay together on the couch. They wrapped their arms around each other and discussed what kind of fun they could have with the bitch, tomorrow. It took a little bit for them to be comfortable. Sarahs ass and back were still red and bruised. They hurt a lot. Jenny was happy to help her and move around for her. She DID regret a little bit because she wanted to hug Sarah close but now was not able to.

They lay there and talked about the bitchs next adventure before falling asleep…………….

To Be continued………………….













               

 






Cindys Lessons     Part 7


Sarah and Jenny woke the next morning on the couch, still wrapped in each others arms.  As they got up to take a shower, Sarah yelped in pain. Her ass and back were still red, scared and bruised. It hurt just as much now as yesterday. Jenny helped her up and fallowed her to the shower. They both stepped into the warm water together. Sarah winced at first as the water hit her back but soon it felt good. Jenny watched her and although she had fun spanking her, she vowed to herself that she would never hit her that hard and for that long again. She felt guilty and now realized how Sarah felt, yesterday.

       They slowly soaped each other up and rubbed themselves all over. Jenny was very careful about Sarahs back and rubbed it very gently. Sarah told her that it still hurt a lot but that she appreciated the thought and that the water made it feel better. She giggled and pointed out that the bitchs back was still bruised and scared and that was from a couple days ago. Jenny just said, “Good!”

       Sarah began to rub Jenny pussy. This time, Jenny didnt argue. Jenny felt she owed her that and more but kept her thoughts to herself. Soon, Jenny was moaning and groaning. She was hanging onto Sarahs shoulders to hold herself up and her face was only a couple inches from Sarahs. Sarah smiled. Jenny had her eyes closed and was getting close to Cumming when Sarah stopped. Jenny looked at her with a pleading look but Sarah just said, “You are not going to cum her. You will cum where I can taste you and lick you dry.” Jenny “mewed” a little and hung onto Sarah for a few seconds when Sarah pulled out of the shower and began to dry her off.

When Jenny was dry she began to dry off Sarah. Jenny was a little afraid. Sarahs back was a mess and she didnt want to cause her anymore pain. Sarah just stood there. Jenny dried her back as gently as she could but even then, Sarah groaned in pain. Jenny started to deeply regret hurting her. After they both were dry, Sarah turned and saw the look in her eyes.


Sarah: “You feel the same as I did, dont you?”


Jenny was starting to tear up and said: “Yes. I am sorry. I never meant to hurt you this bad. Please, dont be angry.”


Sarah: “I am not angry. Did you enjoy it?”


Jenny (looking a little ashamed): “Yes, I did, a little bit.”


Sarah: “Then I will repeat some words of wisdom that I heard recently. I enjoy pleasing you more than anything, even like this. You have no reason or right to feel guilty. If you continue to feel this way, then I will be hurt by knowing that you got hurt. You made me understand this and now it seems that I must make YOU understand it too. This time YOU will be punished.”


Jenny answered with tears running down her cheeks, “I will do as you say. I see your pain every time I look at your back and regret it.”


Sarah: “This is exactly what I am talking about. If my pain is your pleasure, then it is “OK” and there is NOTHING to feel guilty about! Now, stop whining and lets get downstairs and figure out what fun we can have with the bitch, today. Besides, I am looking forward to punishing you and making you “eat” your own words!”


Jenny (rubbing her ass): “You are right. Does it really hurt that bad?”


Sarah (Giggling): “What makes you think your punishment will a spanking? There are all kinds of pain. Now forget that for now and think of the fun we will have with that bitch.”


Jenny half smiled and followed her downstairs. Sarah saw her face and knew that the punishment would be all she would think about today. She looked at Jenny and said with a little irritation in her voice, “Do you want to be punished NOW, just to get it over with?!”


Jenny flinched at the tone in her voice and meekly said: “Yes. Please punish me now. It will be all I think about today, otherwise. Please?”


Sarah: “This is not convenient for us, right now. I suppose I will have to punish you NOW or you will be off in your own little world all day. I will not be able to enjoy things with you moping around all day. If you MUST be punished right now, then your punishment will be twice as bad! Do you still want it NOW??!”


Jenny: “I am sorry but, yes. Please punish me now.”


Sarah: “OK. You WILL do what I tell you!”


Jenny: “Yes, Always.”


Sarah: “Fine, Lets go get the bitch, then. Shes part of it.”


Jenny: “What do you mean, shes part of it?”


Sarah: “Be patient. Its a surprise! You DO want me to enjoy this, dont you?”


Jenny: “Yes, I always want to please you in any way that I can.”


Sarah winked at Jenny and led her down to the room where the bitch was. Sarah opened the door to the room. The bitch was startled and jumped back a little, then blinked her eyes a little while getting used to the light in the hallway. It was not bright but she had spent a day in total darkness. Sarah grabbed the bitch and tied a cloth around her eyes and roughly pulled her back to the living room. She locked her collar to the floor and pulled the cloth off her eyes. She just sat on the floor, quietly and waited. She was afraid of what Sarah would do if she said anything.


Jenny: “What do you want e to do?”


The bitch looked and listened closely. It seemed strange that Jenny should ask Sarah what to do. Something had changed.


Sarah (Looking sternly at Jenny): “I feel generous today. I will give you a choice of one of two things.

  1. You will get on your knees and lick the bitchs cunt until she cums.
  2. The bitch will lick MY pussy until I cum.

I will give you five minutes to decide.”

       Jenny sat on the couch and just stared at Sarah, shocked! She kept thinking back and forth about what to do. It seemed like a long time to her but in reality it only took Jenny a few seconds to decide.


       Jenny (With tears running down her cheeks): “I will lick the bitch until she cums. I dont want to touch the dirty bitch but I NEVER want her filthy mouth to touch you in any way. She will never deserve you in any way and I dont want to responsible for it. She is not good enough to touch you in anyway. I can only pray that you will forgive me and someday let me serve you again, even though I will forever be dirty because of her.”


       Sarah: “OK. You have made your choice.”


       Sarah went and unlocked the bitch and threw her on the couch and told her stay put. Sarah looked at Jenny and told her to get to it. The sooner she started, the sooner she could get finished and they could go have some fun.


       Sarah: “Be polite to her and ask, nicely or this will continue until you do. Understand?”


       Jenny: “Yes. I understand.”


       Jenny walked over to the bitch and got on her knees in front of her and asked, “May I please lick you pussy until you cum?” Sarah noticed that the bitch got a smug look on her face and she said, “vy foulb I? woo havb mop beem mife po me.”


       Jenny: “Please? I only want to pleasure you.”


        The bitch said, with a smart tone in her voice: “Ip feems wike finks hab pfanmed, finpf I wov gom. Omt wowwy, I wiw hav mow porw uoo, waper.”


       Jenny: “Thank you.”


       The bitch spread her legs and told Jenny to get on her knees and get to work! Jenny had tears running down her face while she got onto her knees and moved toward the bitchs pussy. Jenny moved in slowly. She was starting to cry but was determined to keep her word and take her punishment. The bitch laughed and said, “Konp ky wppow pfup.Ou wiw be geppin uusep po my puffy, pfoom emupf.”

       Just as Jennys mouth was about to touch the bitchs pussy, Sarah was suddenly there gently pushing Jennys face off to the side while moving in between the two of them.


       Sarah YELLED: “STOP!!!”


       Jenny just covered her face and cried. Sarah, on the other hand, grabbed the bitch by the hair and yanked her off the couch. She held her up by the throat with her feet barely touching the floor.


       Sarah (with a very angry look on her face): “You fucking bitch! How dare you talk to her like that?! You are not good enough to lick the shit off her ass! Neither one of us will ever touch you like that. I cant even stand to hold you like this! It is taking all my willpower to NOT break your neck, right now. You arrogant bitch! This was a test for you to see if you are learning. Obviously, you havent learned a fucking thing, yet!”

Sarah picked her up with both hands, one by the neck and the other at her crotch and threw her to the other side of the room. She landed on the floor, crashing into the wall at the same time. The chain was still attached to her collar and rattled all the way across the room with her. She unlocked her from the chain, grabbed her collar and “back handed” her hard. Her head flopped to the side and she was out cold but not dead. Sarah put her over her shoulders and took her back to her dark room and shoved her head into the toilet. The bitch coughed and choked as Sarah pulled her head out and threw her across the room.


Sarah: “I ought to let you fucking starve down here but that wouldnt be any fun. Your “non-existent” life just got more complicated. You are not even going to get fucked by Rex anymore. He makes a good friend. You are a waste of skin. You are not going to cum for a LONG LONG time…if ever!! You will be down here for a long time also. GET USED TO IT!


Sarah kicked her in the stomach, spit on her and walked out of the room. The last thing she heard as the door closed was the bitch gasping for breath.

When Sarah got back into the living room, she saw Jenny sitting on the floor with her head resting on her knees. She looked up at Sarah with a “lost” and frightened look on her face. Sarah smiled at her and sat down next to her. Jenny just cried as Sarah pulled her into a hug. They stayed like that for several minutes before Sarah started to say something.


Sarah: “Im sorry. I never meant it to happen like that. I never thought that fucking bitch would ever talk to us like that. I was never going to let you get near her. She is a cesspool in human skin. I would NEVER hurt you like that. I only wanted you to stop feeling that silly guilt. Please, forgive me?”


Jenny: “I was so very afraid when she started to order me around like that. I hate her. It would have been hell for me to lick her cunt but I would NEVER let her touch you in any way. I would rather hurt myself than hurt you. I was so afraid that I would never be able to be near you after I licked her. That is what hurt me the most but it would have been worth it, rather than hurting you. She doesnt deserve to be anywhere near you.”


Sarah: “I let it go too far and I am sorry. Your punishment was complete when you made the choice you did by choosing to lick her rather than her lick me. You and I will always be together. It seems we both feel that the others pleasure is more important than our own. Please say that you forgive me for this and we will be finished with all this silly guilt that you and I have been wrestling with.”


Jenny grabbed Sarah and held her tightly and said, “I forgive you.”


They looked each other in the eyes for a second. Sarah saw that Jenny was smiling and she smiled back just as they pulled each other close again. They hugged each other for several minutes before they got up on the couch and lay down, arms around each other. They didnt say anything for a long time. They just wanted to be touching each other.

After about an hour, Jenny (giggling) whispered into Sarahs ear, “I want to punish the bitch for a change. I think you and I have punished each other enough. She is the one that is not learning. You are right. She is thick-headed.”


Sarah turned and smiled and said, “Yes, we are through punishing each other. It is clear that whatever we do is for the other and not for our self. We should let her rot down there for a while first. Her dinner menu is about to change also. We will go feed her and have some fun somewhere.”

Sarah and Jenny prepared the bitchs new dinner. Sarah let Jenny take it to her, this time. Jenny was happy to because what the bitch said to her earlier. Jenny had to plug her nose. It smelled bad! Sarah told Jenny that it will be different every day so that she wouldnt get used to any particular taste. This was a bowl of raw fish that had been dead for a day with some of Jennys own shit mixed in with it. Sarah insisted on continuing to put vitamins in it so the bitch would stay reasonable healthy. She was no good to them, dead.

Jenny opened the door this time and said, “This is your dinner. I would suggest that you eat it and NOT throw it down the toilet. We have no intention of letting you starve yourself and will FORCE feed you if necessary. Now eat your dinner!”

Jenny slammed the door and left knowing that that food would stink up the place very quickly. Her only choice was to eat it fast or live with the smell. Jenny laughed while thinking about it on the way upstairs. She was already thinking of the bitchs next meal.

The bitch was feeling pretty good until Sarah threw her into the wall and locked her back up. Her jaw still hurt and her stomach was sore from the kick. She had no idea what just happened or why Sarah told her it was a test for her. What did she mean? She crawled over to where the food was. It smelled awful! She stuck her hand in and felt some mushy stuff. The smell was defiantly someones shit. She had no intention of eating it but she wanted to clean it up to get rid of the smell. She could tell the rest was fish but it smelled terrible! She nibbled on it a little. It was awful but she was so very hungry. They hadnt been feeding her much at all. She managed to choke down half of the fish before she flushed the rest along with the shit. She used her hands and the toilet water to clean as well as she could, then put the bowl back out the little trap door. She was still hungry but ate all that she could without puking. She kept hoping they would give her better food. She crawled back to her bed and just lay there in the dark, waiting. She had not been in here very long but was still hoping to see the light of day again.

Jenny came back upstairs and met Sarah in the kitchen. When she walked into the kitchen, she got quite a surprise. Sarah was lying on the table, legs spread wide. On the table with her were several candles and some flower peddles. She had her head resting on a pillow with her eyes closed and was not saying anything.

Jenny paused in the doorway and just stared at her for several minutes. Sarah was truly the most beautiful woman in the world and Jenny knew she was the luckiest person in the world to be with her. She just stood there and admired her and got hornier by the second. It didnt take long before she couldnt stay back any longer. All of the last couple of hours was instantly forgotten. She slowly walked up to Sarah, stood next to her and stared. Tears began to run down her cheek. They were not like before. These were the tears of happiness. She was so happy at this moment.

She wanted so much to “dive in” but she also didnt want to disturb what she saw was one of the most beautiful sites that she ever saw. She reached out gently and rubbed Sarahs cheek. She leaned down and kissed her on the mouth. Sarah kissed her back but otherwise didnt say anything or move. Jenny rubbed her cheeks, neck and around her shoulders. She moved her hands slowly around Sarahs breasts and around her stomach. She felt Sarahs stomach tense slightly upon her touch but otherwise she didnt move. Sarah just lay there with her eyes closed. Jenny moved her hands back up her stomach and around her breasts again. All the while Jenny could not stop staring at her. Her breasts would rise and fall with her breathing.

Jenny lowered her mouth and lightly kissed each nipple while all the time rubbing her stomach up and down. Every time she kissed a nipple, there would be a sharp inhale by Sarah. Jenny gently nibbled each nipple for a long time but to her it was not as long as she wanted. She could kiss every inch of Sarahs body all day. To her, it was like tasting heaven. As she kissed her way down Sarahs stomach, she gently and lightly messaged her breasts and nipples. Sarah was trying her best not to move but her breath kept coming in short gasps while Jenny was wandering around her body. Sarah was becoming more and more sensitive to Jennys touch. Jenny came around and got within an inch of Sarahs pussy. She blew on it with several breaths before licking up each thigh from the knee up and around her pussy being careful not to touch it. Every time she got close, she would blow on it again and Sarah would shudder and inhale sharply.

Jenny saw this and decided she wanted Sarah to be still. She quietly said, “I think I need a little more light here. I cant seem to find what Im looking for.” Jenny took the candles and placed them in a line from just above Sarahs belly button up to her breasts. They were in those little cup-like glasses. They were about 1 ½ inches wide and about 2 inches high so they should stay up on their own. Jenny then said, “There, that should to do it. I always hate to have to chase my lunch across the table.”

Sarah did not say anything and just kept her eyes closed. Now she had a small problem. If she moved, she would knock a candle over and the wax would be VERY hot. Her reaction would probably knock the rest over too and being able to hold still was getting much more difficult. She was already getting wet and her juices were running down her pussy and down the crack of her ass.

Jenny noticed her juices and went down to lick it up. She started low by her ass and licked up slowly and around Sarahs pussy so as not to touch it. She giggled and said, “My food better stay still. I dont want to eat burnt food. If it gets burnt, I will have to throw it away and fix myself something else.” Sarah heard her and moaned a little. She didnt want Jenny to leave her but if she did it would be her own fault for knocking the candles over. Jenny, again, kissed her way up Sarahs belly and around the candles. She moved her way up the left side and kissed and nibbled on Sarahs left nipple and breast, while running her fingers up and down her underarms all the way to her hips.

Jenny bit Sarahs nipple and kissed her way back down her left side and began to work her way up Sarahs right side. Sarah kept “mewing” like a little kitten and would almost inhale and move but she would stop herself just in time. Jenny smiled. Sarah was beginning to go crazy. She was becoming horny as hell and couldnt move without burning herself and if she did, Jenny would stop. She started to moan even more but was still enough to keep the candles upright, even though a couple of them wiggled now and then. As Jenny kissed her way up Sarahs right side she was also running her fingers up and down between Sarahs hip to just under her armpit. Jenny got to her right nipple and was biting and licking it and all around it.

Jenny worked her way back down the right side the same as the left. She kissed and licked her way down while running her fingers up and down her side. Sarah was having a terrible time trying to stay still. She jumped a little a few times and two of the candles almost fell. She had to keep her breathing steady and regular too. Jenny got back to her pussy and licked around it in a circle and stopped and blew on it. Jenny reached and grabbed onto Sarahs thighs and began to lick her pussy. At first, she licked so very lightly and softly, she could barely feel it on her tongue.

Sarah moaned loudly this time. She was obviously going crazy. She even thought for a second to just let the candles burn her. She wanted to cum so very badly and she had never experienced anything like this. She had been tied down so she COULDNT move but this was different. She could if she wanted to but it would burn her. Her mind was being overcome by her lust and Jenny was in NO hurry to make her cum.

Jenny liked her pussy a little harder and began to rub her fingers against the outside of Sarahs pussy lips. Sarah was beginning to shudder, yet the candles didnt fall over. Jenny now knew this was a contest between them and she was determined to win. Sarah kept moaning and groaning with lust and pleasure. Jenny leaned up and while rubbing her chin on Sarahs pussy said, “If you spill any one of these candles you owe me one command. For just one time, you will have to do as I say and if you dont, I have to do what you say for only one time. IS it a deal?” Sarah only moaned and whether she heard or agreed, Jenny couldnt tell but she didnt care. By NOT saying “no”, she was automatically agreeing as far as Jenny was concerned. 

Jenny ever so slowly and gently shoved her tongue into Sarahs pussy and worked her thumb up against Sarahs clit and began to rub harder. She was now fucking her faster and faster with her tongue while shoving her finger harder against Sarahs clit. Sarah was sweating and began to breath heavy. Finally Jenny decided it was time for Sarah to cum and she was fingering her and tonguing her as fast and as hard a she could. Sarah couldnt hold it any longer. She arched her back and squeezed Jenny with her thighs and screamed as loud a she could in a huge wave of pleasure. She began to shudder and shake in her orgasm. All the candles fell over and while spilling the wax all over Sarah rolled off and onto the floor. If Sarah felt anything, she didnt react to it. Jenny didnt give up and she was now on her second orgasm. Jenny continued and reached up and pinched Sarahs nipples as hard as she could. Sarah kept screaming and yelling, “OH GOD, SUCK HARDER….HARDER!!!!”

Jenny suddenly stopped sucking and pulled her mouth away, then pinched Sarahs pussy lips as hard as she could. Sarah let out a scream that Jenny hoped the neighbors didnt hear. Her juices came squirting out like a faucet and Jenny leaned down to catch as much as she could without touching Sarah. She just kept pinching her pussy lips until Sarah settled down and came down from her mountain of lust and orgasms. Sarah had at least three before Jenny let her pussy go and backed away. Sarah just lay there rubbing her tits and still moaning. Jenny smiled and leaned back down to lick up Sarahs juices. She licked softly and slowly from her pussy down the crack of her ass as far as she could to clean up all of Sarahs juice.

Sarah just lay there limp still breathing heavy and sweating. Jenny went around to her head and kissed her deeply shoving her tongue into Sarahs mouth in and out as if she were fucking her mouth with her tongue. Sarah grabbed Jennys head and kissed her back. Sarah began to reach out and grab at Jennys tits but Jenny pushed her hands away and said, “No. no. Those are not for you, yet. You have to perform one task for me, now that you lost the bet. You dont get any of me until the task is finished. You made a deal and will still to it.”


Sarah: “I heard you but couldnt answer. Since I didnt say “no”, I will do what you say. Please let me serve you soon. I need to lick your pussy.”


Jenny: “You will, soon enough but not until you are finished with our bet.”


Sarah: “What do you wish me to do for you?”


Jenny: “I have one little thing for you to do but it will take me an hour or two, to return from a small errand, first.”


Sarah: “OK. I will wait for you here. Please hurry.”


After Jenny left, Sarah looked in on the bitch with the camera she had in the room. It was infrared so the bitch could be seen clearly. She was curled up on her bed with her eyes open, just staring at the wall. Sarah could see where the bowl of food was and it looked like a little was spilled but it didnt look like it was deliberate. Sarah was angry at her for talking to Jenny like she did. She went down to the room with a few things she intended to use on her. Sarah burst into the room and before the bitch could say anything or react, Sarah grabbed her and put a pair of leather cuffs on her and chained her to the ceiling of the room. Sarah looked at her and put some ear plugs in her ears. She also had a device that she herself had put together. It was a vibrator that was gutted out and two large pieces of metal were attached to the outside with wires running inside and out the bottom. She had these wires hooked to a transformer with a variable resistor and then through a second transformer. All this was plugged into an extension cord that was plugged into a wall socket. The current was stepped down to a fraction of an amp but the voltage was stepped up very high and Sarah could control the voltage with the rheostat. She shoved it up the bitchs cunt and used duct tape to hold it there.


Bitch: “Wop aow wou booink?”


Sarah: “Shut up you fucking bitch. This is what I call returning to the basics. We will begin you education all over again except this time you will have to be taught in a way that even you will understand.”


Bitch: “Pees. Pees bomp.”


Sarah ignored her and turned on the device. The bitch twitched a little but only yipped a little. It was on the lowest setting and Sarah knew she could barely feel it. It just startled her. Sarah just turned up the power a little. The bitch started to squirm around and beg.


Bitch: “Pees kop. Pees. I wiw bo wopefer ooh wamp. Pees kop.”


Sarah didnt say anything. Her pleading just made her angrier and she turned the dial up to a quarter of the power setting. The bitch began to jerk around and scream. It wasnt set that high and Sarah figured that she didnt have a high tolerance for any kind of pain. Sarah turned it up a little higher. The bitchs screams and pleas were only babblings at this point and Sarah wouldnt have cared anyway.

Sarah knew she could have used the hypnotism to cause her pain but this was more fun. Sarah smiled as she turned the dial to the half-way point. Sarah was still angry because of before and decided that the teaching lessons had to take a more direct approach. The bitch flopped and jerked around while hanging by her chains. She was still screaming and trying to say something but Sarah couldnt understand her and it wouldnt have made any difference anyway. She turned up the dial to ¾ of its travel. The bitch just kept screaming. She was trying to pull on her chains but couldnt. Sarah turned it up to full and just stood there watching her. There was just enough light form the door to barely see.

Sarah just stood there and watched. Finally the bitch passed out. That was what Sarah was waiting for. She turned the unit off and waited for the bitch to wake up. She intended on taking the device out of her cunt but she wanted to wait until the bitch awoke. After about five minutes she started to wake up. Sarah slapped her and told her to “fucking wake up!” Finally the bitch looked her in the eyes and yelled, “KOP BIF! OOO KANK KEEP BOINGK BIS FOO ME!”

Sarah didnt say anything. She reached down and RIPPED the duct tape off of her cunt and pulled the unit out. The bitch let out a scream that was just as loud as before. She evidently didnt like duct tape ripped from her cunt. Sarah held the unit up to her mouth and said, “LICK IT OFF!” The bitch was defiant but slowly licked it clean of her cunt juice.

Sarah let her down and gave her a good kick in the stomach. There was a “woof” of air fallowed by the bitch gasping for breath. As Sarah left the room and just as she was closing the door she yelled into the room, “PAIN ON!” As the door closed, Sarah heard the loudest screaming she had ever heard in a long time. She just smiled, locked the door and left. She pulled her ear plugs out and there was silence. She knew the bitch was rolling around screaming in pain but she only smiled and walked away. She was still hoping the bitch would learn how to treat others but was secretly hoping it would take a long time. Sarah went to see the bitch on the camera in the room and saw her rolling around on the floor with her mouth open.  She knew the sound level in that room was very high and that the bitch was feeling the worst pain of her life. Sarah turned the monitor off and went to the computer to check on their grocery boy. He answered their question about the Eiffel tower. Sarah looked it up herself and he got the answer right again. She smiled and kept thinking about this eighteen year old boy with raging hormones and not even being able to jack-off. Sarah kept thinking about him constantly dripping. She figured he would be hitting on the old lady in the store pharmacy pretty soon. She couldnt help but laugh while thinking of another question for him. She typed in his next question. “What was the exact that the first atomic bomb landed on Japan?” She giggled and logged off.

Sarah sat down in the living room and kept thinking about Jenny and started to masturbate, when she had wonderful idea. She had nothing to do until Jenny returned anyway. She set up the video camera and decided to make a little video for their grocery boy friend. With the camera all set up, she stood in front of it at first and began to rub her breasts and squeeze her nipples. She rubbed her stomach and moved her hand further down and rubbed her pussy until it started to get wet. She pushed her finger up into her pussy to get her hand good and wet, then pulled it out and showed the camera how wet it was. She put her finger into her mouth and sucked on it like she was giving it as blow job.

Then she turned around to sit on the couch but just before she sat down, she bent over far enough so the camera got a good close up of her ass and pussy together in one shot. She sat on the couch and spread her legs wide and continued to rub and finger herself. She brought her wet hand up to her mouth and slowly licked it clean while the other hand was sliding her fingers in and out as if she was getting fucked by them. Normally she would play with herself quite a bit but she only wanted this video for their little grocery boy. She wanted to drive him crazy by watching her masturbate and not be able to do anything about it since they locked him in the chastity device.

Sarah fingered herself and rubbed her pussy faster and faster until it was obvious, she was having a wonderful orgasm. She rolled her eyes back while staring at the camera and her whole body stiffened up and shuddered. She made it quite obvious that she was Cumming.  As her juices flowed out, she rubbed her hand wet with them and spread it all over her body so she was glistening and wet from head to toe in her own pussy juice. She pushed her tits together and pinched her nipples and blew the camera a kiss.

It wasnt very long but she intended to edit it and add more to it before she sent it. She took the memory card form the camera and watched it closely. She was timing certain events. She wanted to make sure he watched the whole thing so intended to ask him times between certain events. The only way he could answer was to probably watch it several times. She couldnt wait for Jenny to get home to show it to her and tell her about her new idea. She was also VERY curious as to what Jenny wanted her to do. She went back to the monitor to watch the bitch. The bitch was still rolling around in a fetal position because of the pain. Sarah looked at the clock and estimated that the pain would only continue for another few minutes before it would stop on its own but she still wanted to watch her and enjoy the show.

Soon the pain stopped and the bitch just collapsed on the floor and lay there. Sarah went to make her another bowl of “food” for her. She put some mushy dog food in her bowl and mixed in two bottles of the hottest, hot sauce she could find at the store along with some vitamins. They wanted to keep her alive and not get sick. Then for good measure she squatted down and pissed into the bowl and mixed it all up well enough so she couldnt pick around anything. She had to eat it all. She took the bowl and slid it into the little slot and into the room and then went up to watch her on the monitor. It took her about another thirty minutes or so to wake up and crawl over to the food dish. It was obvious she couldnt see it. She kept feeling around before she found it. She picked it up and sniffed it before she dipped her finger into it. She turned up her nose at it but soon began to nibble at it. Sarah laughed. She must be very hungry to eat this. Sarah kept watching and laughing at her reactions to the taste of the food. She would eat a couple of mouthfuls and then rush to the toilet to drink because of the hot sauce. The funny thing was that when she was finished, she actually licked the bowl clean before she washed it in the toilet and slid it back through the little door. She took a good long drink, and then lay down on her bed. Sarah turned the monitor off. It seemed to be the end of the show.

It was only about ten minutes later when she heard Jenny drive into the garage. Sarah was a little nervous. Jenny was becoming quite clever at thinking up strange things for her to do but was always glad to entertain her no matter what she was told to do. She was anxious to tell Jenny about her plans for the grocery boy too.

Jenny walked in the room, naked of course, and had a small bag in the hand. Sarah and Jenny hugged and said their “hellos”. Sarah began to tell Jenny about the bitch and how she wanted to tease their grocery boy. She showed her the video she had already made and explained that she wanted to add some more to it. She told Jenny that she needed a guy to give a blow job to so the video would show him Cumming all over her face. She told her about many other ideas too before Jenny could tell her about a small thing that Sarah was going to do for her.

Jenny said, “Come and lay down on the floor. I need to tie you up so you wont get away on me.” Sarah lay down on the floor and jenny strapped her to the floor, spread eagle and tight. When Jenny asked if she could move, she tried and said no, not even a little bit. Jenny said, “Im glad you like the taste of cum. This will be much easier on you, then.” Jenny pulled out, what looked like a soft tube with a three inch nozzle on one end. Jenny pulled out a thick rod and attached it to the flat end of the tube and explained things to Sarah.


Jenny: “I expect you to do what you are told and not whine and complain. I cant put the gag on because of this but you will cooperate. If you dont, this will be much worse for you. Do you understand?”


Sarah (Staring at the tube): “Yes. I Understand.”


Jenny: “I assume you are wondering what this is. I will tell you. I have been busy today and have spent some of our money too. I tried to get what I need from a frat house at the university but I couldnt so I went to a farm in the country where they breed horses and cows for show. I purchased this just for you. They put it all in this tube for me, which makes things much easier. This is how they transport this stuff. It is full of about twenty ounces of cum from various horses and bulls and you are going to swallow every bit of it and NOT spill any. This cost us a lot of money and I will not have it wasted! Is that clear?!”


Sarah (with a frightened look on her face) stuttered: “Yes. I understand.”


Jenny: “Now drink or I will hold your nose and force you to swallow!!”


Jenny shoved the tube into Sarahs mouth and began to push the plunger in. The animal cum began to ooze and squirt out of the end of the nozzle. Sarah was trying her best to NOT spill any but it was coming out of the tube like a garden hose. Sarah coughed a little and some squirted out her nose but was not spilled. It simply ran into her mouth again. Sarah had never had to swallow so much cum in her life and this was horse and bull sperm too. It grossed her out. It was like sucking a horses cock and then returning for more. She forced herself to keep swallowing. She knew Jenny would think of something worse if she didnt take it all in. As she swallowed faster, Jenny pushed it in faster. She tried to simply open her throat but she was not very good at it and had to breathe every so often too. She would cough a little out of her nose now and then but still didnt spill any.


Jenny (giggling): I knew you would love this. Doesnt it taste wonderful? OH, I sorry. You have your mouth full. I can wait until you are finished with your little snack. You had better not puke it up, either or you will just have to swallow it all over again. Drink up, Honey. I hear this has a lot of protein and that its good for you.”


Jenny kept pushing it into Sarahs mouth. The tube was over half empty now and Sarah was gasping for breath in between gulps. She was already getting a little light headed but didnt give up. Jenny was smiling and enjoying the hell out of this. Sarah didnt have time to look at Jenny. All she could do is swallow, swallow and swallow more.

Finally the tube was empty. Jenny took her finger and scraped up what was on Sarahs face and stuck her finger in Sarahs mouth and told her to lick it clean. Sarah gasped for breath a couple of times, then licked Jennys finger clean of the cum and the end of the tube, also.


Jenny: “You know, there might have been a little more in that tube than I thought. I guess you got your moneys worth after all. There now, that wasnt so bad and I was enjoying watching you. I had no idea that you could swallow that much cum. Maybe the next time, I can get more for you. Wouldnt that be nice?”


       Sarah didnt know how to answer and although it was absolutely terrible she said: “Yes. Thank you very much. It was very good and I wish you would have gotten more.”


Jenny smiled and said: “I thought you wouldnt enjoy it. Next time I will have to think of something that will entertain me even more.”


Sarah: “I am sorry that I couldnt entertain you like I should have but next time I will try harder.”


Jenny: “I was going to let you lick me but your mouth is all full of animal cum and I dont want that mess on my pussy so I will have to just lick you, instead. You dont deserve it though, considering how much you disappointed me just now but I will enjoy it, anyway. Maybe I will simply tease you and not let you cum. I can still get my fill of pussy juice and will enjoy watching you wiggle around. Yes. Lets do that. Before we start, you will need the gag in. I dont want to listen to you beg and whine. I know you will. Every time I get you close, you break your promises to me.”


Jenny shoved the gag into Sarahs mouth and latched it tight around her head. Jenny laughed and told her how easy it slipped in because of all the lubrication. She explained to Sarah to not be disappointed that she wouldnt kiss her but she had cum all over her face, yet. Ick!

Jenny began to nibble and bite on Sarahs nipples and tits. Just as before, she ran her fingers down her underarms and ribs while biting her nipples. Sarah just wiggled and yelled into the gag but Jenny didnt care what she wanted or didnt want. Jenny wanted to be entertained and Sarah disappointed her by actually liking the animal cum.

Jenny continued to lick down her stomach and to just above her pussy, and then stopped. She moved to her thighs and bit her way from the knees, up and around her pussy and back to her stomach. Sarah started to go crazy and yell into the gag but Jenny ignored her, as if she wasnt there. Sarah was having a hard time keeping the cum down but when Jenny began to lick and bite her, all that was forgotten.

Jenny bit her was back down to Sarahs pussy and bit hard on her pussy lips, several times, up and down. Sarah began to scream into the gag but was getting very wet in the process. Jenny laughed and said, “This cant be so bad. Look at how wet you are already.” Sarah wiggled and flopped around while Jenny began to gently and slowly lick her pussy up and down. Up and down, so gently that Sarah could hardly feel it. Mostly she only felt Jenny hot breath on her and that was maddening. She screamed into the gag but Jenny still didnt pay any attention to her at all. Jenny kept licking up and down. All the time Sarah was getting wetter and wetter.


Jenny: “I think I will just keep you like this. I am getting my fill of your juices and if I let you cum, It will stop. This way I can get as much as I want to. You do want me to be happy or do you want to cum?”


Sarah just groaned and nodded her head “yes”, then “no” several times. Jenny said, “You cant seem t o make up your mind, so I will just keep drinking. It is my turn. You have had you drink today. It is only fare that I get some too. Now be still and quit flopping around. It is my turn and you are spoiling it for me.” Sarah was going crazy with lust and Jenny knew exactly what she was doing. There was no way that she could remain still and it was a good thing she was tied down. She did her best to stay still but was a complete failure. She struggled and fought to escape. She needed to cum.

Jenny just kept licking gently and lapping up Sarahs juices and at the same time would not let her cum at all. Jenny kept this up for about ½ hour, and then stopped. Sarah was completely unable to respond so Jenny gave her time alone until she calmed down.

Eventually Sarah calmed down although she was still frustrated because Jenny never let her cum. Jenny came back to her and sand said, “I will untie you now but you have to promise to be silent until I tell you that you can talk and you are forbidden to make yourself cum and promise to let me do it when I feel like it.” Sarah nodded her head “yes”. She still needed to cum but was afraid of what Jenny would make her do next, so she was determined to NOT make herself cum. Sarah noted that once she could talk, Jenny never told her that she couldnt beg for it. Sarah was honor bound to keep her word on their bet. She would never lie to Jenny and had to do what she wanted for this one time or until Jenny released her from her promise.

Jenny released Sarah form all her straps and removed the gag. Jenny stared at her for a few seconds and when she was convinced that Sarah was not going to speak, she walked away and sat down in the kitchen. Sarah rubbed her wrists and ankles and desperately wanted to finger herself but didnt. She just fallowed Jenny to the kitchen and made some coffee for the both of them. Sarah brought Jenny a cup and set it down it front of her. She said, “Thank you.” Jenny told Sarah to go rinse her mouth and brush her teeth. She warned her NOT to cum unless she made her cum and she had better keep quiet! Sarah just nodded and went upstairs to brush and clean up. Sarah returned about ten minutes later and sat down to finish her coffee with Jenny but still remained silent.


Jenny: “Would you please make me some dinner. I am hungry. Are you hungry, too?”


Sarah shook her head “no” and got up to fix Jenny some dinner.


Jenny: “Thats right. You already had your dinner. Wasnt it good? I knew you would like it. I am glad you enjoyed it too. I went through a lot of trouble to get it and I am so happy that you liked it. Well, maybe tomorrow we can eat together. Maybe we should go out and have some fun while we eat. What do you think?”


Sarah nodded her head happily, “YES!”


Jenny: “Me too. I think it would be fun.”


Sarah just nodded and smiled. She wanted to talk to Jenny but couldnt until Jenny let her speak. It was doubly frustrating because she wanted to cum, also. Jenny got up, stood behind Sarah and ran her hand down Sarahs ass and up her pussy, then back down and up her ass again. She did this only once but Sarah “mewed” and almost fell over. Jenny giggled and sat back down.


Jenny: “You like that?


Sarah nodded “yes”.


Jenny: “I like it too. Maybe later I can give you some more and we can both be happy. Wouldnt that be fun?”


Sarah nodded “yes” again and smiled.


After Jenny ate and Sarah cleaned everything up, she went into the living room and sat down beside Jenny and watched TV with her. She remained silent but wanted to speak and cum REAL bad. Jenny told Sarah to sit on the floor in front of her and watch.

Jenny went and got one of their vibrators and sat down on the couch with Sarah sitting on the floor facing her and looking right at Jennys pussy form only about one foot away.. Jenny told her to just watch. She noticed that Sarah just stared at her pussy and didnt seem to hear so she hit her lightly on the head with the vibrator. Jenny laughed and said, “Are you listening to me? Pay attention!” Sarah just looked up and nodded, “yes”.

Jenny turned on the vibrator and rubbed it against her pussy until she was good and wet. She shoved it in her pussy and worked it around while fingering her clit with the other hand. The vibrator was making a lot of squishing noises as she worked it in and out and all around. Sarah just stared like a kid in a candy store. She was completely hypnotized by Jennys pussy and wanted it more than anything. Sarah couldnt help it and began to lean in with her mouth open and tongue hanging out. She was inches away when Jenny pulled the vibrator out and hit her in the face with it. She yelled at Sarah to behave or she would have to start the bet payment all over again. Sarah jerked back and held her face where she was hit, then realized that a little of Jennys juices were now on her face. She rubbed it off with her hand and began to lick it clean while Jenny returned to her fun. It didnt take too long. Jenny was very horny teasing Sarah and wanted to cum. It was all Sarah could do to NOT dive into Jennys pussy. She could only watch as Jennys juices ran down her thighs and ass, onto the couch while she was going faster and faster with her hand and the vibrator. Sarah reached out and touched her thigh just as Jenny started to cum. Jenny screamed in pleasure while her pussy juice was squirting and running all over. Sarah touched her thigh and wiped a little juice off with her finger and stuck the finger into her mouth for a quick taste and hoped Jenny didnt notice. Jenny just lay there for a minute before she looked down at Sarah.



Jenny: “You were naughty. I saw what you did. Now you must clean up this mess for me!”


Sarah smiled a big smile and nodded as she dove in and began to lick Jenny for ass to stomach. Sarah licked and suck on every inch of Jenny below her stomach. Jenny smiled, watched her for a few seconds and lay back. She enjoyed teasing Sarah but could never be angry with her about anything. Jenny decided that the bet was over and when she was finished, she would tell Sarah.

Sarah was like a small tornado within Jennys pussy. Jenny was being pulled back into that world wonderful lust and was quickly rising to the top of that wave and would cum soon. Sarah was crazy with desire. It was pure torture for her to see Jenny cum and see her juices flowing without being able to taste her. Soon Jenny grabbed Sarahs head and pulled it into her pussy and screamed. Jenny was Cumming in waves of orgasms and like a garden hose of juice and Sarah was lapping up every drop as if she were starving to death. Sarah kept licking and sucking until she saw Jenny calming down. She kept her tongue going slowly and gently for a while longer as Jenny just lay back with her eyes closed enjoying Sarahs expert tongue.

Finally Sarah licked and kissed her way up to Jenny face and kissed her a long tongue filled kiss. Jenny grabbed her and hugged her for a minute and then lay down on the couch on her stomach and told Sarah to give her a back message.

Sarah began slowly with her shoulders and rubbed her way down her back and over her ass. Jenny noticed that she worked her way down to her ass a little too quickly but she just smiled and let her do as she pleased. Jenny knew she had stretched the bet a little far so let Sarah do the message as she pleased. Jenny was amazed at how fast she was getting horny again at Sarahs touch. She had already figured out what Sarah was doing and wanted her to continue. Sarah slid her hand down Jennys ass and over her already wet pussy. She slid her thumb into Jennys butt-hole, then shoved her other fingers into her pussy. She grabbed Jenny like a bowling ball and wiggled her fingers around and squeezed them together. Jenny didnt even have time to say anything at all. She just Cum and Cum. She was squirming and flopping around so much, Sarah leaned over onto her back to hold her down. All the time Sarah held her thumb in her ass and fingers in her pussy and kept pinching and squeezing them together. Jenny went crazy. She would have flopped right of the couch if Sarah was not holding her down. Finally she started screaming. Her screaming was incoherent babbling but loud.

Finally when Jenny calmed down, she rolled over and just lay there while Sarah went down to clean off that wonderful pussy of all its juices while still having her fingers inside Jenny. She licked and sucked her pussy dry and clean. Sarah pulled her fingers out and held them up to Jennys face. Jenny grabbed them and sucked them completely clean and dry also. They both leaned into each other and kissed again and when Sarah got back down on her knees, Jenny said, “Thank you for the message. It was simply wonderful! Lets check on the bitch and make sure she is as miserable as I want her to be.”

Sarah fallowed Jenny to the monitor and watched the bitch along with her. Sarah still wanted to tell Jenny all about what she did today but Jenny hadnt told her she could talk, yet. They saw the bitch pacing around the room with a hand on the wall the whole time. It appeared to Jenny that the bitch was finally realizing that it was not going to be fun locked in that room. She laughed and said, “I could watch this all day. It appears that the bitch seems to be losing her mind the way she is walking in circles like that.” Sarah only watched with her. She was hoping Jenny would let her talk soon. She had much to tell her. Finally Sarah reached around and pinched Jennys nipples and when Jenny jumped and looked at her, Sarah opened her mouth and pointed at it. It was clear what she wanted and Jenny just smiled and said, “AH, I see. You wish to talk? I am not sure if I want you to. It is fun simply giving orders and not getting a lot of questions and back-talk. I would love to play some more with you but a bet is a bet and I DID say only this one time so you may now talk and our bet is satisfied.”

Sarah smiled and told her all about what she did to the bitch while she was gone.


Jenny: “You did all that to her? I would have enjoyed watching. Can we do it again?”


Sarah: “I would love to do it again but I would like to something else, first, besides it will be good for her to be in there for a while. It gives her time to think and “reflect” about what a useless piece of shit she is.”


Jenny: “What do we need to do, first?”


Sarah: “I had an idea for our little grocery boy and I think youll enjoy this too. I have made a short video and I would like to make a couple of others and splice them all together and make him watch them. The first was of me shoving the vibrator up my ass and pussy and Cumming and I have idea for a couple more, if you are up to it.”


Jenny: “I would LOVE to. It is making me horny just thinking about him banging his head into the wall in frustration, while his little cock was straining itself to escape. How will you make sure he actually watches them?”


Sarah: “I have already thought of that. We will ask him questions about the timing of the events on the video and he will have to watch it to answer. He might even have to watch it several times to answer our questions.”


Jenny: “That is great! I am getting wet just thinking about it. Can I see the video you made earlier? I would love to see you shove that vibrator in and out of you pussy and ass!”


Sarah (smiling): “Of course you may see it. You dont even have to ask. You can keep a copy and watch it whenever you wish to. I would enjoy it knowing you can watch me anytime you wish to.”


Jenny: “Lets see it!”


Sarah pulled up the video and they both watched it. When Sarah saw Jenny beginning to finger her own pussy, she pulled her hand away and said, “That is MY job! Sit and enjoy.” Sarah got down under the table and pushed Jennys legs open. Jenny was wet, all right. She was dripping onto the chair already while watching Sarahs video.  Sarah didnt waste any time shoving her face and tongue into Jennys pussy. Sarah was thinking how lucky she was to get a chance to shove her tongue up Jennys pussy, twice in one day. Jenny was being very vocal at this point and kept screaming, “OH GOD! Faster, Sarah, FASTER! MAKE ME CUM! HURRY! THIS VIDEO IS SO DAMN HOT! OH MY FUCKING GOD, IM CUMMING! AHHHHHH!”

Sarah was listening and enjoying. She was feeling Jenny jumping around and pussy running fast with juice that never hit the floor. Sarah was right there to lap up every drop. The taste of all that cum, from earlier was gone. Just Jennys taste was left, now and it tasted better than anything, she would ever taste!

Sarah crawled out from under the table and sat beside jenny again. She kept watching the video over and over. Sarah turned it off and told Jenny that they could make the next one on their own.

Sarah got the video camera and set it up in the living room, like before.


Sarah (Pulling Jenny to the couch): “I have a plan for the third part but well need help but for now, here is what we need to do for the second part………………………………………..


To be continued…..
















Cindys Lessons    Part 8




Sarah and Jenny sat together discussing making another video in order to drive the grocery boy crazy. Sarah told Jenny that the next video will be with just the two of them. Jenny smiled and practically flew out of the room and came back with the camera in only a few seconds. Sarah laughed and said, “Dont ever play poker. You dont have the “face” for it.” They both laughed as they set up the camera.

Sarah told Jenny that the video is for the camera and not necessarily like they would normally do things. Jenny looked disappointed but said, “OK”.  As Jenny turned on the camera, Sarah sat on the couch rubbing her tits and pussy for the camera. Jenny came over and sat down beside Sarah and grabbed her and pulled into a nice long kiss. They both slid their hands down and rubbed each others tits. Jenny was the first to reach down farther and began to finger Sarahs pussy. Sarah pushed her to the side while sitting beside her. They both reached down and fingered each other and the camera got a beautiful view of the two of them. They leaned over to each other and kissed and licked each others face. Sarah nibbled on Jennys ear and rolled her tongue all around inside. The two of them were still fingering each others pussies and getting very hot and wet.

They both took their fingers out of each others pussies and let the other lick them clean. Jenny lean forward and began to bite and suck on Sarahs nipples. Sarah leaned her head back, closed her eyes and grabbed Jennys head and pulled it to her. Sarahs tongue was sticking out desperately looking for some part of Jenny to lick but couldnt. Jenny licked her way down Sarahs stomach and shoved her tongue into Sarahs pussy. Sarah groaned and laid her head back and the camera was getting it all. Soon Sarah shuddered in a wonderful orgasm and Jenny made sure she was nice and clean and dry before she kissed her way back up to Sarahs face and licked her face from top to bottom. Sarah kept trying to kiss Jenny but she kept moving away and licking around her mouth but not touching it.

Jenny then pushed Sarah onto her back and sat on her face in such a position that the camera could see it all. Jenny put most of her weight on Sarahs face and simply said, “EAT IT ALL UP!”  Sarah was licking Jenny like she was starving and at the same time trying to breathe but Jenny put her weight on Sarahs face. She was barely able to stay conscious. She would get little breaths of air once in a while but kept her tongue moving in and out of Jennys wonderful pussy. To Sarah, it was worth the fear and trouble of fighting for every breath of air just to lick Jennys pussy. Finally Jenny began to cum and scream while putting her full weight on Sarahs face. Sarahs eyes rolled back into her head and the blackness of unconsciousness was overcoming her.

Jenny raised herself up just as Sarah eyes began to close. Sarah took a large deep breath of air and “came to”. Jenny raised herself a little and farted in Sarahs face and said, “INHALE AND BREATHE IT ALL IN DEAPLY SO I DONT HAVE TO SMELL IT! That will be your new job from now on. Is that clear?”


Sarah said, “Yes Jenny. I understand. You know I will always be happy to please you in any way.”


Jenny laughed and said, “Good. I think that you should clean my ass and pussy when I piss and shit from now on, also but only if you want to. That would make me happy too. Now, is that enough for the tape?”


Sarah smiled and said, “Yes, of course I will be happy to clean you up. The tape should be fine. We will edit it and make it as torturous for him as possible and I will ask him a series of questions about it so he will HAVE to watch it several times to get the answers.”


Jenny: “Tell me the truth. If you dont, then I will consider you a liar and I will not trust you any more, are you going to enjoy the taste of my piss and shit? Will you enjoy cleaning my ass and pussy?”


Sarah: “I dont think I will enjoy the taste, no but I will always enjoy pleasing you in ANY way that I am able so, Yes, I will enjoy cleaning you.”


Jenny: “That is the answer I would expect. It is a truthful answer. I do not want you to lick the shit from my ass or the piss of my pussy unless you ever truly want to under one condition.”


Sarah: “Whats that?”


Jenny: “That you let me clean your pretty ass up now and then and that you never let that bitch clean you up. She is not good enough to clean the shit off your ass. OK?”


Sarah: “You are right and may do anything you wish to me and you dont need to ask.”


Jenny and Sarah to the camera and downloaded the videos to the computer and carefully edited them into two separate videos. It looked like a professional job when they got finished with them. They signed onto the email account and received an email form the grocery boy begging them to let him cum but they just giggled. Sarah told Jenny that he will be coughing up money real soon and that the longer it takes, the more desperate he will become. Sarah sent him the first video of her fingering herself along with several detailed questions about it that would take many viewings to answer. Sarah told him that he better make sure these are answered CORRECTLY because he can view it as many times as he needs to and even in slow motion. She told him that she will be generous and he can have 24 hours, this time to answer so he can enjoy the video as much as he wants to.

Jenny giggles at the idea of their little grocery boy watching Sarah finger herself and his little cock straining to get out and dripping and oozing pre-cum.


Jenny: “Why dont we have him meet us and we can have him lick us to several orgasms. We can give him $20 off for every orgasm he gives us. What do you think?”


Sarah: “That is a great idea. I would love to watch him squirm. There is one more video that we need to make and you will be the star, this time.”


Jenny: “Just tell what you want me to do.”


Sarah: “I will later. I want to do something else before you make it, though.”


Jenny: “Tell me, please?”


Sarah (Grinning): “I will but not now. You will wait because I want you to be surprised and not have time to think about it. You will be better for the camera that way. For now, we have something else to do.”


Sarah typed the additional information and conditions telling him that if he would like to lick their pussys, he should ask politely and they would think about it. She hit “send” and then turned the monitor onto to dark room to watch the bitch. She was pacing around the room dragging her fingers along the wall. She was saying something but there was no sound in there so they couldnt hear her. Jenny laughed at her while she watched her pace.


Jenny:  “Look at her. I think shes going crazy.”


Sarah: “Me too but I have an idea. Maybe she can earn us some money.”


Jenny: “How?”


Sarah, “Lets feed her and well go set it up and then have some fun, somewhere.”


Jenny (Smiling): “Thats great! Ive wanted to get out and play with someone. I could still spend the whole day with your ass on my face and the next day sitting on your face. Then we could start all over again.”


Sarah: “Me too. I will always love to have you grind your ass onto my face and to also smother you with my ass and pussy, too.”


They both laughed and got up to give the bitch her lunch before leaving. Her lunch this time consisted of Some of Rexs shit mixed with a generous supply of some super hot Tabasco sauce. It was all mixed together so it was a nice slurry that could be easily eaten with her hands and fingers. They both took it down to the room and opened the door, this time to give it to her. When the door opened, she jumped to the other side of the room and let out a scream. Sarah out the bowl on the floor and looked at her. She squinted into the small light coming through the door. Even though it was dim, she had been in TOTAL darkness for a few days and her eyes would take a while to adjust.


Sarah: “Bitch, we have a deal for you. If you agree, you will be let out of here for a while. Do you agree?”


Bitch: “Wop bo I hapf po boo?”


Sarah: “What does it matter? If you dont want to do it, its ok, we will just leave and you can stay in here.”


Sarah and Jenny started to leave when the bitch suddenly yelled: “WAIP! I WIW BOO AMYPING WOO WAMPF ME BOO!”


Jenny: “Here is your lunch. Eat it all. You will need your strength. We will return when we need you or maybe not. I just enjoy teasing you. Good bye. Think happy thoughts about the nice warm sun and the wind blowing through the trees. It is a nice warm sunny day out. You should see it, Oh, I forgot. This is your home, now. Oh well, youll have to take my word for it. Bye, bitch.”


Sarah and Jenny left the room and the door closed with a loud and solid thump. The bitch crawled and felt her way over to her food. She could already smell it. She recognized it as Rexs shit mixed with something else. When she tasted it, she knew the taste of that hot sauce and winced but still gobbled it up anyway. She spent the next few minutes eating and drinking large amounts of water. She was VERY hungry!

Sarah laughed at what Jenny said as they left. She kissed Jenny on the cheek and grabbed her hand while they walked back upstairs. They put on their short skirts and tops but still took normal clothes with them. They drove off and went to one of the larger porn shops in the area.

As they walked in, one of the girls running the place recognized Sarah and asked, “Are you here to fuck our customers again? We got a lot of requests for you after you left. You seemed to enjoy it too. Are you still a big slut? We could give you a job fucking people. Then you could be a slut AND a whore.” The girl laughed and just stared and waited to see what Sarah would do. The girl was obviously arrogant and simply figured that Sarah and Jenny would simply strip and spend the day on their hand and knees with cum dripping all over them. The other girl, who didnt recognize them said, “The two of them sure are dressed nice and sexy.”

Sarah caught her comment and began to get an idea but didnt say anything about it for now. She noticed Jenny getting angry and simply touched her hand to calm her down. Jenny got the hint and trusted in Sarah to deal with it.

Sarah laughed and told them no but that she had a proposition for them. They smiled and said, “Lets hear it. We are always open to new ideas and would never turn down a chance to expand.”



Authors note: The deal that was made will be told later in the story.



Girl 1: “That sounds like a great idea for us but why would you two do this for us?


Sarah: “We have our reasons and our deal will remain as we agreed but we DO have one small request that we will ask when we return. You can still refuse the deal at that time if you want to but believe me; it will be to your benefit to agree and lets us go through with it. You have nothing to lose and everything to gain.”



Girl 2: “OK, we will be here tomorrow afternoon as we agreed. It is normally our busiest time for guys viewing the videos in the back room. I will show you the best booth in the back to set up.”


       She led Sarah and Jenny to the back and into one of the booths. Sarah and Jenny worked for about an hour to set things up before they left. They drove to the mall to have some fun before they went home. Jenny was concerned as they drove.


       

       Jenny: “Why did you let them talk to you like that?”


       Sarah: “Dont worry. They are just words and I have plans for them, anyway. If I let them think they are in charge it will make it much easier to deal with them. We will have some fun with them too.”


       Sarah smiled at Jenny and told Jenny let it go. They were still dressed in their short shirts and tops as they drove to the mall again to have some fun. This particular mall was very big and had a lot of restaurants. They went into one of the “teen” hangouts, got some food and drinks and sat down. Everyone stared at them when they came in and sat down but Sarah and Jenny simply ignored them as if it was perfectly normal to be dressed like they were. While they sat and waited, Jenny asked Sarah if she had any ideas. She told her she did.

       Just as Sarah was telling Jenny of her plan, two young boys sat down near them. Sarah knew that they wanted to sit in a booth that would let them get a nice view of the two of them. Sarah leaned over and pointed to the two teens and winked. Jenny smiled as she got up and walked over to them.  As she leaned over the table to talk to them, she noticed that they both had hard-ons and were trying to hide them but it was difficult to hide those tent poles in their pants. She guessed they were about fourteen or fifteen but couldnt be sure but by the looks of them, they were virgins.


       Jenny: “Would you two like to have some fun? My friend and I have a little bet. We want to see who gives a better blow job, me or her. We would like to practice on you two, if its OK with you?”


       Boy 1 (stammering): “You want to have sex with us?”


       Jenny: “Not sex. We just want to suck your cocks to satisfy our bet, thats all. What do you two say?”


       Boy 2: “Yes. We want to but where can we go? We have no car and our parents our home.”


       Jenny (sitting down and winking at Sarah): We can use the mens room. It is not busy and the handicapped stall is big enough for the four of us.”


       Boy 1: “FOUR?”


       Jenny: “Yes. You two, myself and my friend over there.”


       Boy 1: “OK. Should we go in there right now?”


       Jenny: “Not yet. Wait a few minutes to make sure the mens room is empty.”


       Boy 2: “OK.”


       Jenny sat down next to “boy 1” and Sarah came over and sat next to “boy 2”. Sarah said “hi” to them and reached over and started to rub one of the boys cocks. He jumped and almost squirmed away. The two boys were defiantly virgins. No male that lived would squirm away from Sarah. She soon had him in the palm of her hand while Jenny was reaching over and rubbing the other boys cock.

       The two boys were not saying anything. They were simply groaning a little and rolling their eyes back. Jenny giggled. She had never seen anyone simply melt in her hand before. She was totally enjoying it! The two of them kept it up for only a minute. Any longer and they would cum in their pants and Sarah and Jenny didnt want that, yet. They pulled their hands away and the boys looked at them and wondered why they stopped. Sarah smiled and explained it to them.



       Sarah: “We need your help today, boys. My friend here needs practice at giving blow jobs and she wants to practice on you two. Will you help us? Please?”


       Boy 1: “You mean that you want to suck on our cocks?”


       Jenny: “Yes. Will you please help me? I need the practice for my boyfriend and I was hoping you could help me.”

       Boy 2: “I would like that but where can we go? Our parents are home. Do you have a place we can go to?”


       Sarah: “Normally we do but we are a long way from home.”


       Jenny: “Why dont we use the mens room? It is empty and we could all fit in the handicapped stall. Is that OK with you guys?”


       Boy 1: “Are you sure we wont get caught in there?”


       Jenny: “No. If someone comes in, we will be quiet until they leave. No one will see us in the stall. You guys would be doing me a great favor by helping. Will you?”


       Boy 1: “Yes. If you are sure its OK with you?”



       Sarah and Jenny each grabbed onto one of the boys hands and led them into the mens room stall. Jenny took her clothes off, got on her knees and told the boys to take their clothes off too. The boys just stared at Jenny while taking all their clothes off. Sarah winked at Jenny and she smiled back while they were stripping. The two boys were a little shy and although they have never even seen each other, they have never seen a woman naked and began to cover up their cocks with their hands. They both had a huge hard on and neither was able to cover it up.

       Jenny moved in and gently pushed their hands away and began to kiss and lick each boys cock. She licked and kissed back and forth. Both boys were hanging onto the wall and surprisingly to Sarah; they were hanging onto each other, also. They were so lost in what they were feeling that they didnt notice Sarah leave and return. Jenny was desperately trying to not let them cum but it was harder than she thought. The two were horny young teens and had NEVER seen a woman naked, let alone have one suck their cocks.

       Finally, Jenny felt Sarah tap on her shoulder. That was her signal to stop. Jenny grabbed their balls and squeezed them moderately hard to get their attention and to bring the two of them back to earth. They looked down at Jenny with a look of lust and question on their faces. Jenny stood up and put on her clothes and stood next to Sarah.


       Boy 1: “Why did you stop? I thought you wanted to do this.”


       Jenny: “I DO want you two to cum but the rules have just changed.”

       

       Boy 2: “What do you mean?”


       Jenny: “Here is the deal; you two DO want to cum, dont you?”

       

       Boy 1: “Yes we do but why did you stop?”


       Jenny: “If you two want to cum it will cost you. You will either pay us $100 each or…….”


       Boy 2: “We dont have that kind of money!”


       Jenny: “Well, we will take something else for our payment, then. We will take your clothes.”


       The two boys suddenly realized that their clothes were gone. They never saw Sarah take them out of the mens room and hide them. The two of them were scared and Sarah noticed.


       Boy 1: “HEY! Give us our clothes back. How are we suppose to leave without clothes?!!?”


       Jenny: “You are right. I will make a deal with you and give you a chance to get them back. Are you interested?”


       Boy 1 & 2 (together): “YES! YES! We will do anything. Please give them back.”


       

       Jenny: “Heres how you can earn your clothes back. Each of you will suck the others cock until he cums in your mouth and you swallow all of his cum. Whoever gets his friend to cum in his mouth then swallows all of it will get his clothes back.”


       Boy 1: “We cant do that. Its gross. Were not fags!”


       Jenny: “Thats fine. Well just let you go and leave, then.”


       As Jenny and Sarah began to walk out, boy s yelled, “WAIT! Do we have to do this? Please dont make us.”


       Jenny: “That is the deal. Take it or leave it!”


       The two boys looked at each other and grudgingly agreed. They asked, “Who should go first?” Sarah smiled and said, “Either one, boys. Its your choice.” Boy 1 looked at boy 2 and asked, “Should I go first?” Boy 2 said, “Yes, you go first.”

       Boy 1 got down on his knees and at first just stared at his friends cock. Jenny tapped him on the head and said, “If you doing this then get to it. We dont have all day. Start sucking. Suck on his cock like its a lolly pop and you are starving to death.” Boy 1 put his mouth on his friends cock and began to lick it. Sarah and Jenny could tell he was mortified by not only sucking another boys cock but he was sucking his best friends cock.

       Jenny reached down and pushed his head and his friends ass together so his cock was shoved into the boys mouth. He chocked a little but kept going. Both of the boys were horny as hell and being teens, they were full of cum to begin with. The boy sucking was going slowly but wasnt stopping and soon his friend was groaning and humping along with the other boys sucking. Boy 1 was almost knocked down by his friends humping, when boy 2 grabbed his friends head and was pulling it onto his cock. Boy 1 didnt know what to think. His own friend was fucking his mouth and was enjoying it. He noticed that his friends cock was as hard as a rock and he could feel it throbbing in his mouth. He knew what was coming. He jacked off practically twice per day but never tasted his cum and now he was going to get a mouthful of his friends cum.   

       It didnt take long. His friend grabbed his head and pushed his cock all the way into his mouth and simply groaned as he shot his load of cum into his best friends virgin mouth. His friend tried to pull away but the grip on his head was too much. The boy 1 simply coughed and chocked a little with his buddys cum dripping down his chin. Boy 1 simply looked up at his friend and then Jenny and said nothing. Jenny looked at him and told him to wipe his face clean with his fingers and swallow all of it of he wouldnt get his cloths back. The boy wiped his chin and face clean and licked his fingers off. His friend just stood there leaning on the wall and panting like a dog. Sarah told him to lick his friends cock clean too. He just surrendered to it all and licked it all clean with a defeated look on his face.

       Jenny pulled him up and hugged him, gave him a short kiss and turned him around. After his kiss he smiled and didnt seem so “down” any more. Sarah put her hand on boy 2 and gently pushed on his shoulder and told him that it was now his turn.


Boy 2 looked at his friend and said: “I am not a fag like he is. I am not going give anyone a blow-job!”


Boy 1: “Come on, dude. Theyll never let you leave with your clothes if you dont.”


Jenny: “So you dont want to, then?”


Boy 2: “NO!”


Boy 1 (to Jenny): “If I suck him again, can he have his clothes too? Hes my friend.”


Sarah (to boy 2): Ill tell you what, you simply lick his cock only once and we will let you go. What do you say?”


Boy 2: “Well, OK. If thats all I need to do, I will, as long as he doesnt cum!”


Sarah: “That will be good enough. Go ahead.”


As boy 2 began to kneel down, boy 1 gave Jenny a sad and frightened look. Jenny put her hand on his face for a second and winked at him. Boy 2 got on his knees and put his mouth over boy 1s cock and sucked it twice and got back up.


Boy 1: “These two will not let you go. They have already told you so and youve already put your mouth on my cock.”



Boy 2: “That is true but at least I know that I never did give anyone a blow job. You can NEVER say that. I will never tell anyone but you and I will always know!”



Sarah: “I think were finished here.”


Boy 2: “Give us our clothes now, so we can get out of here!”


Jenny: “HE (indicating boy 1) GETS HIS CLOTHES BACK! You do not. You did not live up to your end of the agreement.”


Boy 2: “WHAT??! You said if we sucked each others cock, we would get our clothes back!”


Jenny: I said if you suck it until he comes in your mouth and you must swallow it. You did not. Tough luck!”


Boy 2: “ok. I will do it.”


Sarah: “Its too late, now. You have made your decision. You will live with it. We will all enjoy watching you run out of the mall, naked. Your friend here, on the other hand will have a new choice that you would have gotten too, if you would have cooperated. He will be able to have sex with her (Jenny) twice in any way he wants to. Once will be in here so you can see what you missed and the other will be in private where he can enjoy her somewhere besides a bathroom stall. Always remember, A TRUE friend will stand by his friend, no matter what happens. He will make sacrifices for him and stand by his side. He was willing to sacrifice for his friend, YOU.  You are an ass and he deserves better than you.”


Jenny (to boy 1): “What do you want me to do? I will give it to you any way you want me. Please, tell me.”


Boy 1: “I dont know. You are so pretty and I have never been with a girl.”


Boy 2: “Hes a virgin! I could have told you that!”


Sarah grabbed the boys (boy 2) hair and pined his arms behind him and whispered into his ear, “You will shut your mouth and watch quietly or I will feed you nuts to you. IS THAT CLEAR!??”


The boy just nodded but stayed silent and watched. She had three times his strength and he couldnt do anything.  Sarah held his arms behind him and pulled out a permanent maker and wrote something on his back while Jenny and the other boy were talking. Boy 2 squirmed and tried to see it but Sarah simply pulled his arms tighter and reached under him and gently squeezed his nuts. The boy 

Sarah squeezed his nuts harder just for fun. HE would have curled up and yelled but Sarah held him tight and whispered to him again, “Shut the fuck up and watch them!”

Jenny smiled and kissed boy 1 on the mouth. She stuck her tongue inside his mouth and swirled it around. The boy jerked for moment, then reacted slowly and began to kiss her back. The result was obvious. You could have hung a bowling ball on his cock. It was sticking out a good 6 inches and rock hard. Jenny reached down while she was kissing him and softly rubbed his cock. It was oozing precum. She wiped it on her fingers and brought her fingers up to her mouth and rubbed it on her mouth. She went back to kissing him while her mouth was still moist with his own cum. The boy just groaned and kept kissing her back.

Jenny whispered into his ear, “Rub my tits with one hand and my pussy with the other hand.” The boy reached down with both hands. One began to feel her tits. He had never felt a womans tits before. They felt absolutely marvelous to him. Jenny told him to pinch her nipples while he was playing with them. He let out a small grunt but she told him it was ok. It was obvious to her that he thought it would hurt her but when she told him to again, so he gently pinched them and rubbed them at the same time.

His other hand was reaching down to her pussy but he hesitated. She was patient with him. He deserved to be pleasured and to understand what a girl likes. She wanted his next girl to be pleasured and not just fucked. She told him to rub her. He touched her gently at first and then rubbed her pussy. He noticed it was wet but kept rubbing. She told him to stick his finger inside her and to continue to rub on the outside at the same time. He was confused as he pushed against her but once again, hesitated. She told him to go ahead and that a girl is pleasured this way and there was a hole down there. It was where his nice hard cock would go soon. He groaned as his finger went right into her. It was an instinct born into every male. He moved his finger in and out while still rubbing the outside and right on her clit. He now noticed that she began to react to his hands. He was still a little afraid but at the same time was barely able to control himself. He somehow knew that he should give her as much pleasure as he was getting form her.

Jenny pulled away from him and looked him in the eye. She asked him what he would like and that it was his choice. She would do whatever he wished. He didnt know what to say. He was new at this and didnt know what he COULD do.

All this time, boy 2, held by Sarah was watching, wide-eyed and wishing he was in his friends shoes. His cock was already hard again. Sarah grinned and continued to squeeze his nuts. She was making sure that he would feel the pain that he made his friend feel and at the same time witnessing his friends rewards. Boy 2 was truly beginning to wish he had sucked his friends cock. Somehow, now it didnt matter much. Neither of them would have ever said anything about it anyway and it would have always been their secret. Now he could only watch while feeling the pain of his nuts being squeezed moderately hard and his arms pinned behind his so tight that his elbows were touching. He watched and forgot all about Sarahs writing on his back.

Jenny smiled at him. It was a smile of someone that was giving herself to him and he knew that she only wanted to please him. She was not tricking him this time, like before. He was still confused and a little afraid. He didnt know what to do. Jenny gently pushed him back so he was sitting on the toilet lid. She climbed over his waist and slowly pushed her pussy down onto his cock. His cock was now all the way inside her. He had NEVER felt anything like this. She was the most wonderful thing in his life at this moment. All she wanted to do right now is please him and he didnt feel he deserved it. This was something that should have been for someone who deserved it but not him.

All this went through his mind in the instant his cock was sliding into her pussy. It was forgotten just as fast. He eyes rolled back into his head and he simply let out a groaning babble. Jenny slowly began to ride his cock. She humped and ground her crotch and pussy on his cock. He was young and had already been close and he soon was Cumming inside her. He must have pumped a gallon of cum into her. She felt his body stiffen up, while he let out a long loud groan. Jenny closed her eyes and smiled. She did not cum but that was never her intention. She knew he couldnt hold out and she only wanted to please him, not herself.

While this was going on, his friend was standing there wide eyed and staring. He had forgotten all about the cock sucking before and was simply staring at his friend wishing he was him.

Jenny simply held him for a few minutes while still keeping his cock in her pussy. She didnt want to spoil his first time. Now she wished she could have been somewhere else besides a mens room for his first time but it will be a good story for the rest of his life. Finally, he “came back to earth” and hugged her back. They just held each other for a few minutes before they separated. He just stammered out, “Thank you. You are wonderful!” Jenny smiled and said, “You are very welcome. If you will come with us to our car, I will give you your second choice. This is not the place for this. Stay here and I will get your clothes.” Jenny left the mens room and came back a minute later with his clothes. He noticed that his friends clothes were not with his but he knew his friend gave up his chance and this was his own fault. Jenny grabbed his hand and nodded at Sarah that she was finished in here and they should leave, now.

Sarah spun the boy around and told him that he better not give them any trouble. While he had his mouth over his friends cock, she took some pictures of it. It shows his face quite clearly with his mouth over another guys cock but she made sure she didnt get his friends face in the picture. No one would know who he was sucking but they WOULD know it was another guy. She told him they would post it all over his school and all over the internet if he caused them or his friend any troubles.

Sarah nodded back, spun the other boy around and shoved her knee hard into his nuts and walked out of the room behind Jenny and the other boy. When they got clear of the mens room, Sarah told them to stop for a few minutes so they could watch the show when Boy 2 came running out of the bathroom. They sat down at a table with some soda and just waited.

Sarah told the boy: We wanted both of you naked, running through the mall and store but you dont deserve it. You deserve our attentions in a different way. Your friend on the other hand is an ass and we will enjoy watching him.”


Jenny: What did you write on his back?”


Sarah (Giggling): “Its a surprise”


It was over an hour before boy 2 came running out of the mens room. The place wasnt too busy but it was busy enough. A lot of people were staring at him. Despite being kicked in the nuts, he ran past them with his rock hard cock leading the way. His cock was leading the way by over 6 inches. He was red-faced as a beet and trying to cover up his cock but wasnt very successful. As he was trying to keep his balance from running, his hands and arms would swing back and forth to his sides. Finally he decided to give up covering himself to simply get out as fast as possible. His cock bobbed up and down as he ran. There was no part of him that wasnt seen by everyone. All were pointing. Many were laughing, especially the young girls. They were not only laughing and pointing but they were calling him names too. When he ran past Sarah, Jenny and the other boy, they began to laugh too. Jenny and the boy finally saw what Sarah had written on his back. In BOLD black print were the words: “I SUCK COCK”.


Sarah: “It is written with a permanent marker which could be washed off but it is in the middle of his back if he cant reach it. He must get someone else to scrub his back for him and even then that ink is NOT easy to get off. He must find a true friend to help him, if he even has any or he must let it ware off by itself. I would love to see what all the guys at your school say when they see him in the locker room. (Looking at boy 1) He had a friend but I think he lost him today. What do you think?”


Boy 1: “I will help him if he asks. He and I have been friends for a long time. I cant just dump him.”


Sarah: “You are a good friend and a good person. I am sorry we did this to you. You did not deserve it. (Handing him a piece of paper) Here is an email address you can reach us at. If he gives you any troubles about today, let me know. Tell him we still have these pictures and use them if he does. I have pictures of you too with his cum on your face but neither of us will ever use them unless you give us trouble. I am not threatening you. On the contrary, we have enjoyed meeting you and I hope you will always remember today and us be happy.”


Boy 1 (Crying): “I would never give either of you any trouble. You both have given me much more than I deserve and I will always be grateful to you. My only regret is that you two did not threaten us earlier.”


Jenny and Sarah laughed at his last statement because he was sincere. He was as sincere and honest as anyone could be and they both knew it. Jenny grabbed his hand and led him out to their car. It was a large SUV and could easily hold all three of them in the back, comfortably. It also had tinted windows and no one could see inside, either. Sarah smiled as he tripped twice on the way out. He was staring so much at Jenny and herself that he wasnt watching where he was going. If Jenny was holding his hand, he would have fallen over three more times on the way to the car.

The three of them climbed into the back of the car. Jenny and Sarah both stripped naked while the boy simply stared with his mouth hanging open. He had never seen a girl naked and on this day, his first time, he was looking at the two VERY pretty women and one (Sarah) was the most beautiful woman that he had EVER seen in the world. His cock was rock hard again as Jenny and Sarah slowly removed his clothing. He didnt fight them. He told himself that even if they threw him out naked and drove away, he would always be grateful to them and happy that he met them. He decided to tell them.


Boy 1: “I am not sure why you are doing this. Maybe you want to watch me run away naked just to laugh at me but I wanted to say this before you do. I will always be grateful to you two and will remember today with happiness. I beg of you, though, please dont write anything on me like you did to my friend. PLEASE?”


Sarah: “Listen to me carefully. We have no intention of doing anything to you. We simply want to teach you how to please a woman. Many guys simply fuck them, cum and roll over and sleep or leave them. We are left alone hurt and unsatisfied. Think of our time as an investment for women all over. We need to teach you one thing before you leave us.”


Boy: “Thank you. I am sorry to keep staring at you two but you are so beautiful. I want to touch you and kiss you. I want to please you like you have pleased me. I owe it to you, many times over.”


Jenny: “Lay down on your back. We will teach you how to use your tongue and mouth to please a woman. Women all over will enjoy this and they will be grateful to you for it. You will learn to enjoy it over time too.”


Boy: “Tell me what to do.”


Jenny: “Lay on you back and I will lower myself onto your face. I will not sit on you but will push my pussy on your mouth. First I want you to lick my thighs. Your dried up cum is there from before and You should always clean up you partner.”


As Jenny lowered herself near him, he licked her thighs as fast and the best he could. It was heaven to him. He licked and kissed Jennys thighs even when he knew she was clean.


Jenny: “You are very good at this. Now as my pussy rests on your mouth, you will push you tongue in and out on my pussy like your fingers were earlier. At the same time, you will rub your tongue and lips over my clit, like before with your fingers. All the time you will suck and move your mouth, tongue and lips all around while never forgetting the first three things that you will be doing. Do it now! Eat my pussy and dont stop until I tell you!”


The boy wasnt sure of himself and she was getting very wet. Juice was flowing out and she wouldnt let up so all he could do is keep licking and swallowing her juice. It was not unpleasant. She tasted much better than his friend did. He could taste a little of his own cum but it soon was all clean out and all he tasted was her. He unconsciously reached up with his hands and grabbed her ass so she would get up. Jenny began to grind her pussy into his face and moan.  He was having a very hard time breathing but he was determined to not give up. He had no idea if he was doing anything right but still he wouldnt give up. She began to moan and kept grinding her ass and pussy onto his face.

Soon he felt something else. He felt someone getting on top of his waist and cock. Sarah was lowering herself onto his cock. She slipped her pussy onto his cock and slowly began to hump his rock hard cock. Sarah knew he wouldnt last long but like every teen he would recover very quickly. She tried to hold him off and tease him as long as she could.

He tried even harder to do as Jenny told him to do and to breathe at the same time. He was becoming lost in this little world of lust and sex. Sarah couldnt hold him off any longer. He suddenly stiffened up and would have yelled if Jenny had not been almost smothering him. As he was Cumming he stopped licking and sucking on Jennys pussy. Jenny Put her weight on his face and said, “Hey, Keep working down there. Never stop until the girl cums at least once. He concentrated so very hard on licking Jenny and not trying to think of his own selfish pleasure. Sarah rested on his cock for a few minutes. She wanted to make sure he satisfied Jenny. To Sarah, Jennys pleasure was ALWAYS the most important thing in the world. She didnt wait long. Hs enthusiasm more than made up for his lack of skill.

Jenny suddenly stiffened up and pushed her pussy into his face with the weight of her body. He couldnt breathe but he figured if he was going to die, this was the best way in the world. He kept licking as hard and as fast as he could in just the way Jenny told him to. Jenny was yelling, “Oh GOD! OH GOD! SUCK ME! SUCK ME HARDER!! AHHHH!”

Jenny juices were running faster than he could swallow and he was starving for air. He was getting light headed and he knew it would over soon. He relaxed and let the darkness come and he fell asleep.

Suddenly he was coughing and gasping for air. When his vision cleared, he saw Sarah and Jenny looking into his eyes. They were smiling at him. Jenny said, “You will be ok. Im sorry. You were doing a good job at the end and I wanted you to know how it feels to please a woman. I didnt mean to smother you. Im sorry.”


Boy: “It is ok. I have never felt anything so wonderful in my life. I could feel the wave of pleasure roll over you and at the same time, she (Indicating Sarah) was giving me such pleasure. You both are helping me and have made me feel so wonderful and I have no way to repay you. How can I ever repay you two for what you have done for me?”


Sarah: “We do not want any type of payment from you. We have met a rare person in this mass of people in the city. You are a good person and a good friend. We would be honored if you would consider us your friends.”


Boy: “Calling you two “friend” is never something you need to ask. You are and always will be my friends. I know I can never be close to you two but I would love it if you would at least meet me here once in a while, just to talk?”


Jenny: “We will look for you here when we can on Saturday afternoons. Please dont even think we will forget or avoid you. You are our friend.”


Boy: “May I have my clothes and go please. I would love nothing better than to spend the whole day with you but my family is expecting me soon. Please, let me go?”


Sarah: Before you go, I want to tell you something. Everything we have taught you today must be used with grace and gentleness. Young girls without experience would be afraid of you if you do this to them too soon. Please let the girl take the lead and show you what she wants. Be assertive but always respect her wishes and be patient with her. She will always be worth waiting for. Never walk away and leave her unsatisfied, NEVER!”


Boy: Before I go, may I ask you something?”


Jenny (Laughing): “I think you just did. I am sorry. Ask your question.”

Boy: “I am a little embarrassed but may I practice on her too (indicating Sarah)?”


Sarah didnt even answer him. She pulled him to her and slid her pussy onto his mouth and lay down on his stomach and began to suck his cock in a beautiful “69”.


Jenny: “Go ahead and practice. She will be working on you at the same time. This means you will get as much as you give. It is a kind of contest to see who can make the other cum first. Get to work, boy!”


Sarah began to suck his cock like a pro. He was inexperienced and had never gotten a blow job before today but even he could appreciate the beauty of an expert. He also immediately began to lick and suck on her pussy. He had tasted Jenny up until now and the first thing he noticed was that Sarah tasted different. It was something that he wasnt expecting. She still tasted as wonderful as Jenny but different. As he worked on her as before, he noticed that Sarah had stopped sucking his cock and was sucking and nibbling on his balls. He jerked for a second. He was afraid she would bite down but soon realized that it felt good. He wanted her to continue but at the same time was getting desperate for her mouth and tongue to get back to his cock.

Jenny smiled. She knew what was going on. He was still getting an education. Jenny was hoping he would figure it out on his own but the way he was squirming and groaning, Sarah was teasing him to death and not satisfying him. Sarah waved her hand at Jenny to let her know what she wanted. Jenny brought her head down to his face. Her face was so close to Sarahs ass and pussy she began to lick on it for a second, and then stopped. It took all her will power to stop licking Sarah. She was totally addicted to Sarah and her wonderful body but this boy right now was more important.



Jenny whispered to him: “Is this frustrating?”


Boy: “Uh Huh.”


Jenny: “You are forgetting something. Think. Where is your mouth? Where is the spot that gives her pleasure? Think! You are upside down.”


Boy: “Groan”


The boy immediately moved his tongue downward to her clit. He began to shove his tongue into her pussy and suck on her clit which he now realized was downward in relation to him, now. He felt so stupid. AS soon as his mouth was on Sarahs clit and he returned to licking her properly, she went back to sucking on his cock. Sarah was very good at keeping men right on the edge but not letting them cum. This was one of those times. She wanted to teach him one last lesson.

He was licking her as if he was starving. With Sarah keeping him on the edge, he was going insane with lust. He licked harder and faster. Jenny was watching with a little jealousy. She wanted to be the only one to kiss and lick Sarahs body but she knew this was not a random sex session. It had a purpose and she understood why she was letting him put his mouth on her. Still, with all this going through jennys mind, she was getting horny and began to finger herself. She was watching Sarah get closer and closer and it was driving her crazy. Sarahs pleasure has always been the most important thing to her. She realized that to see this boy bring her pleasure made her happy and not jealous. She smiled and fingered herself even faster and watched.

The boy was going insane. He wanted so bad to cum but Sarah wouldnt let him. Sarah herself was different story. Sarah shuddered and stiffened up. Her juices were flowing all over his face while she started to scream, “AHHHHH! SUCK HARDER! HARDER! MY GOD, IM CUMMING!!

Finally she calmed down and rolled off the boy while leaving him hard as a rock and frustrated. Sarah turned around and sat on his chest while keeping him form touching himself. Jenny on the other hand was shoving her fingers up her own pussy and had closed her eyes. She kept fucking herself and paid no attention to Sarah and the boy. The boy was going to say something but Sarah put her fingers over his mouth to tell him to be silent. Sarah didnt want to disturb Jenny. She wanted to watch her. Like Jenny, Sarahs number one priority was to please Jenny. Sarah just watched as Jenny finger fucked herself faster and faster. Like Sarah, Jenny shoved her fingers up her pussy hard and deep and took herself to her own world of lust and pleasure. She knew that the boy was not allowed to cum and this made her even hornier. She Began to cum and scream even louder than Sarah. She let out a long loud scream and the boy just lay there watching. After watching Jenny, the boy was about to explode in frustration but Sarah still sat on him and wouldnt let him touch himself.

Jenny simply collapsed against the side of the car with her fingers still up her pussy. Sarah wanted so much to go and lick her clean and like Jenny, it took all her willpower to not run over and ravage her. The boy simply struggled but couldnt do anything.



Sarah looked at the boy and said: “This will be another lesson for you. We have one more after this and you will be free to go. You will be left this way. You will be left right n the edge of Cumming. You will know what girls feel like when guys just fuck them, get their rocks off and either leaves or rolls over and sleeps while she is left unsatisfied. It is the most frustrating thing to feel. You feel betrayed by someone that you care about. Now get up and sit down in the back seat. We have one more thing to tell you, and then we are finished.”


Boy: “Ok, but cant I take care of myself?”


Sarah: “No. That is my point. It will always be your job to satisfy your partner before yourself. Your partner must always be your first priority and not simply your own selfish needs and she will always take care of you like you take care of her. You will both be happy. Do you understand?”


Boy: “I think so but it is so very frustrating!”


Sarah: “That is EXACTLY my point. We are not trying to be ass holes to you. We are trying to teach you to be the best lover you can. Girls will love you for it and you will not be just another shithead guy who simply USES girls! Now come and sit down. We have a few things to tell you. NO touching yourself, now. For now, that is NOT allowed.”


Boy: “Ok”.


By now, Jenny had calmed down and the three of them sat down in the back seat. The boy realized they were still all naked and that he should have been embarrassed but he wasnt. He was perfectly comfortable with these two beautiful women. He was wishing he could see them again after today but he knew he wouldnt. They were way “out of his league”.



Authors note: Sarah and Jenny gave the boy (form this point on, he will be known as Tim), Tim several long speeches all about dating and when and how to get physical with his dates. They gave him several good lessons about life with girls and sex. He took them seriously and vowed to himself that he would NEVER forget what they taught him today.



While he got dressed, Sarah told him that they considered him a friend. She gave him an email address that he could use to talk to them when he wanted to. She told him that he could talk to them about anything all, especially about dating and girls. She told him that they would send him regular emails, just to say “hi”. She told him she would send him the pictures of his friend sucking on his cock incase he needed them. She said, “I trust you to not abuse them.”

The boy smiled and started to lean toward Sarah and Jenny but stopped short. Sarah smiled back. She knew what he was thinking. She reached out and grabbed him and pulled him into a long warm hug. That hug melted the last of his nervousness with them. They both hugged him. He liked these two women even though they made him give his friend a blow job. He was their friend and now he truly knew what that meant. His friend wouldnt give him any troubles with those pictures and he would have his own problems with that writing on his back.

He didnt want to leave them but Sarah told him that they would keep in touch. She said, “You are a rare person on this world of ass holes. You deserve respect and we are sorry we made you suck your friends cock. I am glad to have met you. Good bye for now, my friend.”


Tim: “You have nothing to be sorry for. You showed me that my “friend” was not a friend to be trusted but hopefully he will learn as I have. You have taught me things, I will ALWAYS remember. Girls are important and their needs are more important than mine. By treating girls this way, they will treat me with respect and trust. I hope that you two will not be angry that I jack off once in a while when I think of you. Is that ok?”


Jenny: “It is more than ok. You had BETTER think of us while you masturbate! We will both be terribly hurt if you dont. Maybe we can send you a picture or two of us. That way, you can have something to look at while you cum all over yourself. If you promise to swallow your own cum EVERY time you blow your load, we will promise to send you some pictures. What do you say?”


Tim: “I promise. I will always swallow my own cum, when I jack off while thinking of you two. You are both very beautiful and I will NEVER forget you! I look forward to seeing your pictures. Bye for now and Thank you.”


Just as Tim was about to pull his pants up Sarah and Jenny together, leaned down and together, licked his cock up and down twice. Tim groaned a little, smiled and pulled his pants up. He got out and walked away with his nice hard cock pointing the way. It stuck out for all to see but it would never bother him again to walk around with a rock hard cock pushing the front of his pants out in front of him. He considered himself to be the luckiest guy on Earth.

Jenny and Sarah hugged while watching him walk away.


Jenny: “What do you think? Will he be ok and take to heart the lessons we taught him, today?”


Sarah: “I have NO doubt. I think we have just made our world a little brighter place to live in. We had better get back home. We need to feed Rex and his bitch.”


Jenny: I would never want Rex to go hungry. As to the bitch, she can rot down there for all I care but you are right. Lets go home. I really REALLY need your pussy right now. It took all of my willpower to NOT push him out of the car and “gobble” you up myself!”


Sarah (laughing): “I know what you mean. When you were on him, I got a little jealous but even more than that, I wanted you so bad!  Lets get home, QUICK! I can smell you from here and I want to lick and suck you until your voice is “horse” from screaming!”



Jenny and Sarah stayed naked and drove home like they were in a NASCAR race. They ran into the house and wrestled on the floor to see who licked who first. Sarah could have easily won but Jenny was more important and she deserved to have her “lunch” first.

Jenny told Sarah to lay down. Jenny leaned over within an inch of Sarahs pussy and then gently blew on it and flipped over and shoved her pussy in Sarahs face at the same time. She put them in a beautiful “69”. Jenny looked back and said, “You will always be more important.” Sarah began to cry while they both rammed their faces into each others pussy and licked and sucked until their tongues were limp and sore and their mouth were stiff and sore. They took a ten second break and started all over again.

It was over an hour later when they stopped. Both Jenny and Sarah just lay on the floor in each others arms. They were all full of sweat and their faces full and sticky with each others pussy juices. They were happy.

Finally, Sarah said, “We should go bring Rex in and feed him now. You take care of Rex and Ill go feed the bitch and see if she is learning, yet.” Jenny replied, “Ok but make sure you feed her something gross.” Sarah just laughed while she went to fix the bitchs dinner.

Sarah and Jenny made a difference today but tomorrow was another day and they needed to get back to the bitch and keep trying to make her learn. She was stubborn. She still needed a lot of attention and education.


To be continued…….








 


       


       

Cindys Lessons     Part 9

Authors Note: Any further comments on this story please send to my new email: Lockedup737@Yahoo.com. My other yahoo account “crashed” and is no longer working. THX.


Jenny went outside and brought Rex inside. He was happy to see her. Jenny gave him some food and fresh water. She sat down by him and hugged him and petted him while he ate. He licked her face and went back to eating.


       Jenny: “Do you miss your bitch, boy? I will make sure that you get to fuck her again. Im sure she misses you too. Stay here and be good. Ill go get her for you.”


       As Jenny went to get Rex, Sarah made the bitch some food. She didnt want to mess with it that much so she simply put regular dog food, pissed in it and took it down to her. She slid it into the slot as before and then went upstairs to watch her and to see how she was doing. She met Jenny coming down and told her to wait and watch her on the monitor. Jenny told Sarah that Rex was getting lonely and needed his bitch. Sarah laughed and said hell get her soon and that she wanted to watch her for a minute first.

       They sat down and looked at the monitor. They saw her gobbling up the last of her food. She was shoving the last bit in her mouth when they saw her. She even licked the bowl clean as best as she could before sticking her head in the toilet and getting a nice long drink of water. Jenny laughed, “She was hungry, wasnt she?” Sarah replied, “Yea. Lets bring her up and see how much she has learned.”

       They went down and opened the door slowly and then entered the room where the bitch has been locked up for days, now. She has been in total darkness and total silence. When the door opened, she jumped into her bed and screamed for a few seconds. Her mind had made that little room into her reality. When the door opened, it was an intrusion in her world and it took her a second to recover and to realize that she wasnt from here. She wanted to leave.

       There was not much light coming in through the door but since she had been in total darkness, it was like daylight to her. She looked at her visitors and knew that they were in charge of her life. She remained silent until she knew what they wanted.


       Sarah: “Do you want to come out for a while, bitch? Your lover needs you. He has been a good boy and he deserves a good fuck from you. Well, DO YOU?!”


       Bitch: “Wesf. Peefh wep me owpf. I wiw be goob. Peeesf?”


       Jenny: “If it were up to me, bitch, I would let you rot down here. It would be fun to watch you eat some food meant for animals like you. What do you think? Maybe we could start feeding you some dead animals. Rabbits? Mice? How about a nice freshly killed chicken?”


       Bitch: “Peesf. I pomisf, I wiw be goob.”


       Sarah put a hood over her head and put a leash on her collar. She yanked on it and told her to follow her. Sarah dragged her upstairs stumbling every so often because she couldnt see anything. They chained her to the floor bolt that was now referred to as “The Bitch bolt”. When Jenny ripped off the hood, the bitch screamed and covered her eyes. She had been in total darkness and even the normal inside light was blinding to her. She blindly crawled into her corner where a new bed had been set up for her. As she was whining, Rex came in and sat down beside her and licked her face. She kept her eyes closed but reached around Rexs neck and hugged him like a child hugs a teddy bear.

       Jenny: “Isnt that nice. They miss each other.”


       Sarah: “They sure do, dont they? Leave them alone for a while. After Rex fucks her, she needs a bath. She stinks.”


       Jenny: “Youre right about that. She does. I think we should let her bathe herself out there. I am getting sick of giving her a bath. I dont want to touch her.”


       Sarah: “OK. Well give her a chance to see if she will cooperate, yet. Lets watch. I would like a little entertainment right now. Go get us a couple of beers and we can both enjoy the show.”


       Jenny went into the kitchen and came back with some beer and sat down next to Sarah to watch. Jenny yelled at her, “Come on bitch! Get your ass in the air. Poor Rex hasnt had a good fuck in a week, now!” The bitch got up on all “fours” and stuck her ass up for Rex. She was slowly getting used to the light and could see Jenny and Sarah watching her. She was slowly accepting the fact that she belonged to Sarah and Jenny but was still mortified at being fucked by a dog. It would be better to be a whore for money than this. Fucking Rex was purely for their entertainment.

       Rex licked her cunt for a minute and then mounted her from behind. His cock was already beginning to emerge form its hiding place. Jenny noticed the bitch was reaching back and helping Rex by pulling it into her cunt.


       Jenny: “Look, Sarah, she actually wants him to fuck her and Rex is happy to have his bitch back.”


       Sarah: “I see that. Rex is more important than her anyway. She knows that her job is to keep him satisfied. (to the bitch) You hear me bitch? Rex is your master and we are his. Whatever he wants you to do, you had batter do it unless we say otherwise. Is that clear?!”


       Bitch: “Wesf. I unberfwand. May I peesf cum? PEEESF??”


       Jenny: “Why should we let you cum? You havent done anything to earn it!”


       Sarah: “Jenny is correct. From now on you will have to earn the privilege of Cumming. Your job is to make Rex cum, so stop whining about your own selfishness. Do you understand?”


       Bitch: “Wesf. I unberfwand……………………….”


       Whatever the bitch was going to say next was lost as Rex shoved his cock deep into her cunt. She let out a grunt, closed her eyes and stuck her ass up as he began to hump on her like a piston. Like before, Rex was drooling all over her back with his tongue hanging out. He did something new this time, though. As he was humping on her he leaned down and gently grabbed her neck along with her hair. He pulled and began to growl a little. It was now clear to even him that she was his bitch and He wanted to make sure that she knew it too.


       Jenny: “Look at that. Is that supposed to happen?”


       Sarah (laughing): “Yes it is. All dogs do that to their bitches when they fuck them. He is establishing his dominance over her. He is letting her know that he is in charge and that she will always come to him whenever he needs her. He is telling her that he is her master, now. It is normal and long overdue for them.”


       Jenny (laughing): “Well, bitch, it looks like even Rex now knows that you belong to him. I would suggest that you obey him. Dogs have a way of showing everyone who is in charge of the pack and you, my little bitch, are the pack.”


       Rex continued to fuck her hard and fast. The bitch not only DIDNT seem to mind, she was actually enjoying it. She began to hump back when Rex suddenly bit down harder and growled louder. She stopped and stayed still. It was clear to everyone that Rex wanted her to be still. He didnt like fucking a moving target and he let her know it. Even though she stayed still, she continued to groan and be very vocal.



       Bitch: “OH GOB! OH GOB! PFUCK ME WEX! PFUCK ME HAWBER! OH GOB! I WANP PO CUM! PEEEESF WEP ME CUM! PEEEEEEESF?!!!”


       Sarah and Jenny just laughed and watched. Rex didnt give a shit if she wanted to cum or not. He didnt give a shit if she even enjoyed it. All he wanted was to cum in her worthless cunt. He kept pumping her fast and hard and all the while holding her neck and growling. Sarah yelled out over her yelling and said, “We told you before, bitch, you have to earn your orgasms. The only thing you need to worry about right now is to make sure Rex is happy. He is your only concern. Remember that and stay still and be quiet.”

       The bitch stopped yelling but kept grunting and letting out a groan now and then. Jenny laughed even harder. Soon Rex grabbed her tight with his paws, pulled on her head and neck. He stiffened up and shot his load into the bitchs cunt. She just let out a long groan as her cunt filled up with her lovers cum.

       After Rex had pumped his full load, he let her go and tried to pull away but his knot was stuck in her cunt. Every time he pulled, she felt the pain. She would yelp in pain when he would try to pull free from her. The two of them were now ass to ass and Rex would pull every few seconds to try and free himself from his new bitch. Finally after a few minutes his cock came free with a squishy pop. The bitch fell down on her side while Rex sat over to clean himself up.


       Jenny: “Come on, bitch, help you lover clean himself up. You dont expect him to do ALL the work. My god, you wouldnt even help him fuck you and you didnt even thank him. The least you could do is clean him up. Clean you dirty cunt juice of him!”


       The bitch crawled over to Rex and leaned over to lick his cock. This was still disgusting to her but she had no choice but to accept Rex as her master and herself as his bitch. It was now her job to take care of him and to clean him up. His cock was still sticking at least 6 inches out and she began to lick and suck on it. He raised his head and licked her face while she sucked and licked his cock clean.

While she was still bent over, he got up and pissed on her to mark her as his own and then he crawled to her bed, lay down and went to sleep. He curled up and slept. When the bitch crawled over to lay by him, he growled at her. He clearly DIDNT want to share his bed with her. She crawled over to the wall and sat down with her back against the wall.


       Jenny: “Hey bitch, dont let our floor get all dirty. Clean up you worthless cunt before it drips all over!”


       Sarah: “Good idea. Go on, bitch. Lick you cunt clean of your masters cum.”


       The bitch cried as she began to scoop up Rexs cum with her fingers and lick them clean.  While his cum kept oozing out, she kept scooping it and licking off her fingers. She had never liked the taste of cum. That is why she would NEVER give a guy a blow job. She thought it was disgusting but now it seemed to be her duty to clean up after Rex. Clearly, Rex was her master, now. Soon her cunt was clean of her masters cum. She tried again to crawl over and curl up with him but he braked and snarled at her so she just lay on the floor and waited.

       Jenny went over to the bitch and unhooked the chain from the floor and dragged her outside. Jenny told her she stunk and needed a bath. There was a bucket, sponge, rags and the hose waiting for them out the back door. Jenny kicked her down the stairs and told her that this was a time for her to earn a few “brownie” points. She was to give herself a bath with the chain holding her and if she was a good little bitch, she would get a reward. Before the bitch started to bathe, she went over the side and squatted down and took a nice big shit and piss. As she was always told to do, she scooped up her shit with her hand and took it around to the back of the garage and returned.

       The bitch looked a Jenny for a second. She figured this was another cruel joke by Jenny. She knew that Jenny really hated her. Jenny just sat down on the steps and watched her for a few seconds before she got up and kicked the bitch in the ass and told her to hurry up. The bitch grabbed the soap and filled the bucket and mixed the soap up. She took the sponge and lathered herself all up before rubbing herself and scrubbing herself clean with the sponge and soapy water. She scrubbed her ass and pussy real good. It was starting to get sore from shitting in the darkroom and not cleaning it properly. She tried to scoop water from the toilet and rub it on her ass but it didnt work very well. This bath felt good and she was greatful.

       As the bitch was rinsing herself off, she heard a voice off to the side.


       Mans voice: “Hi Jenny. How are things going with you and your mom?”


       Jenny: “Were doing great, Butch. How are you doing?”


       Butch: “Were doing fine, here too. What have you got going on there?”


       Jenny: “Our house guest needed a bath. She was dirty and stinky. She prefers to bathe outside for some reason, so we let her, otherwise she throws a fit. We are taking care of her for a while. Her family cant so we told them that we would help them out. They are good people.”


       Butch: “Sounds like she is a handful. She likes to bathe outside? Well, it doesnt bother me at all and that guy on the other side of you doesnt mind, Im sure. You dont mind if I watch, do you? Will she mind? She is a pretty one except for the piercings.”


       Jenny: “No, I dont mind and she doesnt care at all either as long as you dont try to talk to her. She gets kind of wild when a stranger talks to her. As to the piercings, she had them done before anyone knew she had problems so we just let her keep them. Someday maybe we can take them out but we must go one step at a time for now.”


       Butch: “I understand. I will just stand here and watch, then.  A pretty girl always makes my day, especially a naked one, if youll forgive me.”


       Jenny: “Its all right. She gets this all the time. For some reason, she doesnt mind people staring at her as long as they dont talk to her. Please, be my guest.”


       Butch just leaned on the fence and stared at the bitch scrubbing herself down and then using the hose with the cold water, rinsed herself off. After she was finished, she looked at Jenny and said, “May I peesf havf a towiw?” Jenny told her to dry herself off like Rex has to. She told her to roll around in the grass and dry herself that way. Jenny wanted her to put on a good show for Butch too. Jenny glanced at him now and then and knew he was jacking off, watching her. Jenny smiled but was a little jealous. The bitch didnt deserve to be appreciated like that.

       The bitch rolled around on the cold grass and dried herself as best she could. She knew the neighbor was staring at her and seemed to be enjoying her ass and cunt as they were exposed and spread for him while she dried herself. She glanced at Jenny but there was no sympathy. Jenny just stared at her and waited. Finally the bitch was fairly dry and Jenny got up and called her to the door. The bitch didnt know if she should walk or crawl so she crawled back into the house and to her spot in the living room next to Rex.

It didnt go unnoticed to the bitch that they didnt attach her collar to the leash like they usually did. For just split second, she considered running away but realized that she had nowhere to run to. Sarah had erased her from all records. She didnt exist anymore and no one could understand her anyway with that oversized ring in her tongue. She belonged to Rex and he belonged to Sarah and Jenny. She was slowly accepting her new role as their property. Did she really deserve this? Was she this bad of a person? She began to go over her entire life while she was locked in that dark room. She began to wonder. How could she generate this much hate and absolutely no friendship or compassion? She hung her head down because she knew she had no REAL friends. Those that she had always called “friend” would never help her even if they KNEW about her. She was convinced that they would sit here drinking mixed drinks and enjoying the show she would put on for them and not think twice about not helping her.

Jenny fallowed her inside and sat down next to Sarah in the kitchen. The two of them spoke quietly so Rex and the bitch couldnt hear them.


       Sarah: “I was watching through the window. I heard what you told Butch. That was fast thinking. I am proud of you. Even though you left her leash off, she doesnt seem to want to try and run away, does she?”


       Jenny: “No, she doesnt. I was hoping she would so I could punish her. Butch didnt seem to mind and he simply believed what I said. Hes a good guy anyway. Hes a good neighbor. I know I keep saying it but I will NEVER forgive her for what she did. It was my fault too and I want you to know that I will always do whatever you say. I deserve to be your slave and be punished for what I had done to you.”


       Jenny got on her knees and laid hr head on Sarahs lap and began to cry. She held her around the legs and waist and simply said, “Im sorry”.  Sarah knew how Jenny felt. The pain Jenny was feeling was the bitchs fault and it made Sarah angry.


       Sarah: “Wait here and keep your head on the chair. I will be right back.”


       Jenny: “Yes Sarah.”



       Jenny wasnt quite sure what to think. It sounded like Sarah wanted her to be her slave but she wasnt sure. If Sarah did want Jenny to serve her, she was happy to be her servant. Sarah deserved to be happy and Jenny would do whatever she wanted to make her happy.

       Sarah went into the living room and stood in front of the bitch. The bitch saw the anger in her eyes and moved back into the wall as far as she could. She had fear in her eyes and wasnt sure what was wrong. Sarah commanded her to turn around and stick her ass up into the air. The bitch was shaking in fear but obeyed. Sarah just stared at her ass and cunt for a minute. She wanted to let her swim in her fear for a minute. The bitch was visibly shaking. She would have pleaded but she had no idea what was happening. It was obvious to her that SOMETHING was wrong.


Sarah: “You fucking bitch! You have no idea how much I have to control myself right now. You are the source of the pain Jenny is feeling. She has been wrestling with it since she realized that you were simply using her. You used me too but I can live with it. I am trying desperately to help you but I am having my doubts if you even can be helped. You are one of the most selfish animals on Earth!”


       All the time Sarah was yelling at her, the bitch just knelt there with her ass sticking up. She began to cry. She was beginning to realize what Sarah was saying but she still didnt think she was an evil person. She had been wrestling with all this for the last couple of weeks and especially while locked up in the darkroom. All this went through the bitchs mind in an instant.

As Sarah yelled, “FUCKING BITCH!”, she kicked the bitch in the cunt. The bitch screamed and curled up in a ball. She was screaming still and holding her cunt while Sarah left and went back into the kitchen where Jenny was still on her knees with her head on the seat of the chair.

Sarah thought carefully. She loved Jenny more than anything in the world and knew that she needed to come to terms over what she had perceived as a cruel betrayal. Sarah sat down and pushed Jenny onto the floor and told her to sit and be silent. Jenny looked up at Sarah and sat there watching her but said nothing. Sarah knew that Jenny felt great guilt over what she had thought was her role in the cruelty they had done on her (Sarah). Sarah had to purge this from Jenny. Sarah loved Jenny more than anything on Earth and would NEVER hurt her. Jenny wanted to be punished and Sarah knew that she had to punish her even though it was the last thing in the world she wanted for Jenny. Sarah was fighting with this for a while as Jenny sat on the floor. Sarah didnt look at jenny and pretended not to care that she was even there. A tear came to Sarahs eye as she realized what she had to do.


       Sarah: “You are right. You deserve to be punished. You were partly responsible for hurting me. You will do whatever I tell you to. This punishment will go on as long as needed until I think you have been punished enough. This punishment is done out of love and not revenge. You must be taught not to hurt people like that ever again. You also must be taught to recognize when you are being used and to know who your real friends are! Is that clear??!!”


       Jenny: “Yes Sarah. I understand. I will do whatever you say.”


       Sarah: “Until I say so, you will never speak no matter where we are or what we are doing unless I tell you to speak. You are not even allowed to make noises unless I allow it. You will have certain freedoms but if you abuse those freedoms, you will spend as much time in the darkroom with the bitch for as much time as she is there. You will both feel your punishments together for much of the time around here. There will be more rules coming for you but those are your rules for now.  Is that clear?!”

Jenny almost said “Yes”, but caught herself in time. She simply nodded.


       


       Sarah went and got the old collar that they had her wear when she was their slave. It was not as secure as the one that the bitch had but it still needed a key to open the lock in order to remove it. On this collar the lock could be cut but other than that, it couldnt be taken off without the key. The bitchs collar was special made. It was a hardened steel alloy. It absolutely required the proper key. The lock in that collar was custom made and was internal. Under NO conditions could the bitch ever get that collar off unless she removed her head.

Sarah put the collar on Jennys neck and told her that she would be wearing it for quite a while and that shed better get used to it until her new one arrived. She took Jenny into the living room where the bitch was and used another chain and locked Jenny to it. She was locked up to another bolt but the two of them could reach each other easily.


Sarah: “The both of you will remain here for a while. Just so you understand, you both are now Rexs bitches. You will do whatever he wants you to do. You will both do your best to make him happy. I am Rexs owner and he obeys me and you two obey him. IS THAT CLEAR??!”


Bitch: “Wesf Farah. I umberspanmd.”


Jenny simply nodded. Sarah left and went into the kitchen to make herself some breakfast. She got into the kitchen and pretended to make a little noise like she was fixing breakfast. The kitchen and the living room were separated quite a bit and though loud noises could be heard, talking and normal noise could not.

Sarah sat down, laid her head on the table and began to cry. Jenny was her one true love and to humiliate her and hurt her was very painful to Sarah but she knew that Jenny needed this to purge her guilt. Sarah told her many times that the guilt she felt was for nothing but she still was carrying it around like a heavy bag on her back. Sarah knew that this was the only way but she still cried.

She cried for a few minutes and rested her head on the table for a while before she pulled herself together to make Rex some food. The other two would have to wait until he was finished. She put Rexs food on the floor next to his bed. The bitch and Jenny just watched. Sarah called Rex over, petted and hugged him for a while then got up and let him eat. She told them that they would eat after Rex was finished and he had taken his morning walk.

Sarah went and got Rexs leash. She walked in the room with his leash and a large long object that looked like a big pliers. She grabbed the bitchs chain and yanked her over and shoved it in her face.



       Sarah: “Listen very carefully to me bitch. I am cutting your tongue ring off for now. Think of it as being on parole. If you do not behave yourself or if you give me any troubles, I will cut your tongue out and lock you in that room for years. Do you understand me??!!”


Bitch: “Wesf Farah. I umbersftanb.”


Sarah: “Stick out your tongue, bitch.”


The bitch stuck out her tongue and Sarah grabbed it with her fingers and said, “Maybe I should just cut your tongue out right now. What do you think, bitch?”


The bitch suddenly got a wide-eyed look of fear in her eyes. She knew that Sarah not only could do it but that she wanted to. All she could do is shake her head and make gurgling noises. Sarah was angry with her beyond belief. She pulled on the ring so her tongue was sticking way out and put the clippers on the back of her tongue. The bitch could only whimper and cry and shake her head “no”. Sarah took the clippers and put a small cut in her tongue and then cut the ring out. The bitch screamed for a minute before she realized that her tongue was still there. She was tasting blood but it was there and the ring was gone.


Sarah: “Yes, bitch, your worthless tongue is still there. You would not be able to give Rex a proper blowjob if you didnt have a tongue and he is more important than you are. Trust me, though, if you give me even the smallest amount of trouble, I will not only cut your tongue out but I will also cut some more important things out too. DO YOU HEAR ME BITCH??!!”


Bitch (trembling and crying in fear): “Yes Sarah”


Jenny just sat there and watched in fear. She hated the bitch but was not sure if she wanted her mutilated, like that. It made her wonder just how much she hated her. Jenny almost felt sorry for her but then just stared at her. Maybe she would be better without a tongue, after all. Sarah got one their ball gags and shoved it into the bitchs mouth and locked it on her.


Sarah: “I want you two quiet. I dont want to hear any whining form you, either. I can trust her to keep her big mouth shut but you need a little help to shut your fucking dog hole shut, bitch!



Then, Sarah grabbed the bitchs leash and yanked her so they were face to face. Sarah balled up her fist and hit her on the side of the head so hard that she flew six feet in the air and slammed into the wall. The bitch fell on the floor with a thump. She was “out” cold. Sarah didnt even look back. She put some clothes on and took Rex out for a walk.

Jenny looked at the bitch with a little satisfaction. She had a cut on her head and would have at least a large bruise on her head. Jenny was hoping she would have a nice headache too, when she woke up. Jenny knew she wasnt permanently damaged. Sarah was an expert at hand to hand combat and knew exactly how much force to use. Jenny DID smile, though because she knew that Sarah would make her feel a little pain for a while. Jenny crawled over to Rexs little bed and lay down.

She started to cry when she realized that she probably wouldnt be able to touch Sarah for a long time. Her tears ran down her cheek for a while but she deserved it for what she had done. She was duped but was still responsible for her own actions. She laid there hoping that she could at least see Sarah once and a while. It was just occurring to her that she would probably get lock in the dark room. What if she was in there and the bitch was upstairs in the living room. How could she even bare that? She was already on the same level as the bitch. Would Sarah let the bitch have some control over her? She was afraid but all she could do is cry. She was not allowed to say anything of even beg. She just closed her eyes and cried.

Sarah walked over to the neighbors house while walking Rex. Butch answered the door when she knocked. Sarah had normal clothing on but she still was clearly one of the most beautiful women that Butch had ever seen.


Butch (stammering): “Hi Sarah. Can I help you with something?”



Sarah: “Hi Butch. I need a favor from you.”


Jenny was laying there for about an hour before the bitch began to awake. She was groaning for a few minutes before she opened her eyes and slowly sat up. She rubbed her head where Sarah hit her.        It was bruised and had a little blood on it. She just groaned for a minute. She started to say something when she realized the tongue ring was missing but immediately realized that she was gagged and couldnt talk anyway. She and Jenny looked at each other with no emotion. Jenny smiled and evil smile at her while she just grunted and snorted at her.

After a few minutes, Jenny went over to the bitch and began to look closely at the side of her head. The bitch jerked back and snorted at her. Jenny pointed at her mouth and shook her head. She was trying to tell the bitch that she was not allowed to talk. The bitch seemed to understand and pointed at her head and shook it “no”. Jenny smiled and nodded. The bitch softened a little and let Jenny touch her. Jenny took the blanket from the bed and wiped the blood from the side of her head and put the bitchs hand on it indicating that she should hold it there for a while. The bitch gave her a soft expression and nodded her head at Jenny. Jenny smiled and nodded back. Jenny really didnt like her but she wanted to make her feel like her friend in case Sarah put the bitch in some kind of control over her. Jenny was truly afraid of that.

It was about an hour later that Sarah walked in with Rex. She took his leash off and told him to go and lay down in his bed. He walked over and saw Jenny in his bed. He didnt know what to do. The bitch was his but this person n his bed was his master, so he just lay down on the floor. Sarah walked over and kicked Jenny and told her that she had better start realizing that Rex was her superior, now and she had better respect it! Jenny crawled out of the bed and Rex lay down in his bed and curled up to sleep. Sarah went over to the couch and relaxed for a while. She noticed Jenny staring at her and told her that she had better enjoy her last look because from now on, she would wear clothes and that the two of them were the only ones that would be naked all the time. She told Jenny that she wouldnt be touching her either and that she (Sarah) would have to find satisfaction for somewhere else since Jenny was going to be all tied up from now on.

Jenny stared at Sarah when she walked in. She enjoyed watching Sarah even with clothes on. She longed to touch her. When Sarah told her that she would not be seeing her or touching her any longer, she began to cry all over again.

Sarah sat for a while and watched TV. She told both Jenny and the bitch that if Rex wanted a piece of ass that they had better cooperate. She told the bitch that she could cum but only from Rex fucking her and not for any other reason. It was necessary to say it because the bitch was still under her hypnosis and needed permission to cum. She looked at both of them and said, “Now you two are equal. You will have to make Rex happy in order to be happy.

Sarah looked Jenny in the eye and said, “You are NOT allowed to cum in any way except when and if Rex fucks you! IF I even think you have cum in any other way, you will be locked up for a long time! UNDERSTAND!!??” Jenny just nodded with fear in her eyes.

It was a short time later when there was a knock on the door. It was Butch form next door.


Butch: “Hey there babe. I have some free time this afternoon and I am bored to tears. How about you make my free time worthwhile? You are a nice looking bitch and I would love to have you entertain me for a while. What do you say, honey?”


Sarah: “Well, ok. I am free for a while too and I need a good fuck anyway. Its been a while for me and my lover just became unavailable for a long time. Give me one minute and Ill be right back. Have a seat.”


Butch: “Sure thing, babe. Dont be too long or Ill have to find someone else.”


Sarah (With an excited tone in her voice): “No. Please. Ill only be a minute.”


Butch: “Well, dont stand there babbling, hurry up.”


Sarah ran and grabbed the bitch and took her to the dark room. When she got in, she took out the gag. She told her that she didnt want her to die of thirst and that no one could hear her in here anyway. She told her she was free to scream as loud and as long as she wished to and closed the door and left. The bitch was left in total darkness once again.

Sarah came back into the living room and as she walked over to Butch, she stripped her clothes off. Butch didnt have to fake being horny or awed by her beauty. He just sat there with a dumb look on his face and watched her. Sarah Gave Jenny a hard look and told her that shed better stay quiet. Jenny just nodded but didnt make a sound.

By the time she got over to Butch, she was completely naked. She kneeled down in front of him and said, “What would you like, first? Its been a long time since I have had a nice cock.”  He told her she should use that nice mouth and tongue of hers, first. Sarah began to undo his belt and then lower and remove his pants. While she was doing that, he had stripped his shirt off. As she moved in towards his cock, he grabbed her head and pulled her mouth onto his cock and began to hump and fuck her mouth. All she could do is moan and groan. If she wanted to say something, she would have to wait until he blew his load into her mouth, first, so she worked on him like a pro.

Her tongue was moving around his cock like whirlpool and her mouth was being pushed and pulled up and down his cock. He was fucking her mouth like he was insane with lust. He was not faking. He was lost in a total world of lust. The only thing he wanted right now was to fill her mouth with cum and to use his cock to shove it down her throat!

Jenny watched form the other side of the room. Her tears were rolling down her face. Her beautiful Sarah was using her mouth to please someone else and it was not only a guy but was their neighbor and she was enjoying it. She watched as Sarahs mouth was being fucked by this guy. He was crazy.  Suddenly his eyes rolled back into his head. He Grabbed Sarahs head and pulled on it along with her hair and ears and held it tight. Jenny knew his load was being forced down Sarahs throat. When he let go, Sarah pulled her head off his cock and his cum was running down her chin. She took her finger and scooped it up and sucked her fingers clean.


Sarah smiled up at him and said:”Please fuck me. I need that cock of yours in me, NOW!”


Butch: “Sure thing, babe. Get that juice off your face, first. Lick it all clean before I fuck you. Roll over on that coffee table so I can fuck you. I would kiss you but now your mouth is all dirty with cum, so you will just have to be happy with being fucked.”


Sarah: “Of course. Anything that you wish is what I need!”


Sarah jumped onto the coffee table with her ass sticking up for Butch to have easy access to. Butch jumped on her and shoved his cock into her ass. Sarah yelped and grabbed the table and hung on.


Butch grunted and said: “Oh, Im sorry. I must have missed and hit the wrong hole. You dont mind, do you, honey?”


Sarah replied: “No. Oh god! Stick that cock in anywhere you wish to. It feels so damn good.”


Sarah started to reach down to finger herself but Butch grabbed her arm and pushed it away and said: “No you dont, babe. You are to give me your full attention. If you start to finger yourself, you will forget all about me. You can shove whatever you want up your cunt, after I am finished with you.”


Sarah: “Im sorry, Butch. Just fuck me hard. FUCK ME HARDER!”


Butch was ramming his cock in and out of Sarahs ass. It was all Sarah could do to hang on to the table. She was getting horny as hell but couldnt finger herself. Butch kept pushing her hand away. It was driving her crazy. It didnt take Butch long. He was crazy with lust. He was literally fucking the most beautiful woman in the world. He kept grunting and pounding his cock into her.  Finally after there was a pool of sweat on her back, he grunted and grabbed her ass and held on for dear life as he pushed a load into another of Sarahs holes. He collapsed onto her back and laid there for a minute before he got up. Sarah was lying on the table all spent but still horny. He pulled her up and told her to get on her knees and clean his cock up. It was dirty from being in her shit filled asshole.

At first Sarah suggested that Jenny clean him up. Jenny perked up a bit. She didnt want Sarah to suck on his dirty cock. She would have been more than happy to clean him off. She wanted to please Sarah in the worst way. All she could do is sit in silence and wait and watch.


Butch: “Thats not the way it works, baby. Whoever gets it dirty cleans it up. That is the rule. If you dont like it then you can find yourself another cock to shove in your holes.”


Sarah just got on her knees and tentatively began to lick his cock. It was all full of cum and some shit from her own ass hole. Jenny could see it clearly and Sarah gave a face that indicated that It tasted awful and that she didnt want to clean it like this. Tears began to run down Jennys face again. Butch was a basterd for doing this to her. Why was she putting up with it? Is it possible that she wanted a cock more than her? This made her cry and even more to realize that she might never be able to touch, kiss or lick Sarah ever again. From now on, Sarah would be looking for a cock and not want her anymore. She simply cried. She desperately wanted to beg for Butch to let her clean it off but Sarah had ordered her to “not talk”. She cried.


Sarah: “Please, cant I wipe it off with a towel or rag?”


Butch: “I told you NO, you slut! Now get to work and start to clean it. You have two seconds or I will not come over here and fuck you ever again. CLEAN IT! CLEAN AND WORSHIP MY COCK, SLUT!”


Sarah herd Jennys chain rattle a little bit and knew what she was thinking. She didnt pay any attention to Jenny while she began to lick and suck his cock all over again. Soon it was all cleaned up. Butch told Sarah to stay on her knees and remember what his cock looked like and tasted like. He told her that he might fuck her again if she asks nicely. He smiled at her and told that if she wanted him to fuck her again, she had better crawl over to his door on her hands and knees and beg for it or he would never fuck her again. He told her that just because she begged doesnt mean he would fuck her. He would think about it if he didnt have anything to do.


Sarah: “Yes Butch. Will you please fuck me tomorrow? Please?”


Butch: “I told you to crawl over and beg. Just for this, I will not fuck you for two weeks. Your holes are all dirty anyway.  I dont think I want to anyway but you can still beg if you want to. I would enjoy that as much as I enjoy fucking you. If my buddies are here, maybe they can all fuck you at once. Would you like that, slut? I dont think I want to anymore. In fact, I want you to crawl over once per day before three oclock and beg. If you miss one day, I will NEVER fuck you again! Do you understand slut?”


Sarah: “Yes Butch…Sir. I understand. Your friends can fuck me as much as they wish. I am here for you, always. I will do whatever you say but please fuck me some more. I need a cock in me and yours is the largest I have ever had. Please?”


Butch walked out the door leaving Sarah on her knees and said nothing else. Sarah quickly got up on the coffee table and began to finger herself. Butch left her horny as hell and wouldnt let her finger fuck herself. She sat so Jenny could get a nice clear view of her fingers going in and out of her pussy. Jenny watched and cried. Soon Butchs cum started oozing out of her ass hole all over the table. She was humping her hand and sliding around on the table mixing her juices with Butchs cum.  Her fingers went faster and faster. It didnt take long. Sarah always wanted a good orgasm. She shuddered and stiffened up and yelled, “OH MY FUCKING GOD! IM CUMMING! BUTCH, YOU COCK FEELS SO WONDERFUL! IM CUMMING! AHHHHHHHH..!”

Sarah collapsed on the table, flat on her back, breathing heavy and sweating. Finally she got up and looked at Jenny. Jenny was drying her eyes out with her head in her hands. Sarah went over to her and yanked on her chain and dragged her over to the table and told her to lick it clean and to NOT miss a drop or she would be punished! Jenny was still sniffling and crying but leaned over and began to lick up Butchs cum that had just oozed out of Sarahs ass hole. She didnt mind cleaning up Sarah but to lick up that basterds cum was degrading. He had used Sarah and treated her like a dog and she begged for more just to have his cock. Jenny didnt understand and kept crying and licking. She loved Sarah and wanted her back but she knew that she deserved it. She never deserved that short time that she had with Sarah. This was what she would be form now on. Being Sarahs servant was not too bad but seeing her fucked like that and begging for more was something that Jenny didnt understand.

After Sarah was satisfied that Jenny clean up after Butch, she pulled Jenny back and told her to stay by Rex and fuck him if he wants her. She told Jenny that if she didnt fuck Rex when he wanted to, she would spend a LONG time in the darkroom and the bitch would stay up here by Rex. Sarah told that she knew that the Bitch would fuck him whenever he wanted. Jenny was hungry and thirsty but couldnt do anything except lay there and cry. She had lost Sarah. The only thing she had now was Rex. She moved closer to him and began to pet him. She rested her head on him and closed her eyes. She had no more tears left.

Sarah went upstairs and lay on her bed. She grabbed Jennys pillow and curled up with it in a fetal position and began to cry. She was balling like a little baby. She had hurt Jenny badly and she knew it. Her only salvation was that the bitch could not watch and happily enjoy Jennys pain. It was a good thing that the bitch was not within reach of Sarah. Sarah could have killed her slowly right now. Sarah hugged Jennys pillow. She could even smell Jenny in it. She didnt know how long she could keep this up. It was tearing her up from the inside. She decided at that moment that she also wanted revenge on the bitch. The bitch would be controlled. Whether she was actually sorry and had changed was irrelevant. She would never leave and would be control for the rest of her life. She would feel a regular dose of pain also. Her pain would come at irregular intervals and would take many different forms but would be VERY real.

Sarah kissed Jennys pillow, pulled herself together and went back downstairs. She walked through the living room and didnt even look at Jenny. She came back a short time later with two bowls. One had water in it and the other had dog food. She put them down by Jenny and told her that was her supper for the night. She went back to prepare the bitchs dinner. Sarah went behind the garage where the bitch had been dumping her shit and filled the bowl with it. She pissed in it and took it down to the bitch and shoved it into the little trap food door and went back upstairs. There was absolutely nothing nutritional in the bowl. It was 100% shit and piss. Sarah hoped she would choke on it.

Sarah looked a Jenny and said, “Do you need to go out? I want to go see if Butch will fuck me again. I really need his cock.” Jenny shook her head “no”. She had not eaten all day and didnt need to go outside. She wasnt looking forward to it anyway but she knew she had no choice. She watched Sarah crawl out the door and knew she was crawling over to that basterds house to beg him to fuck her. She could have almost any guy she wanted. Why did she want him??

Sarah came back about a half hour later. She crawled back into the house and across the living room. Jenny noticed that she had cum all over her back as she crawled across the floor. Sarah was smiling and glanced at Jenny and said, “Things are getting better. He told me that if I kept his cum on my back all night, he would think about fucking me tomorrow even though he said he wouldnt for two weeks. You should be happy for me. I might get to feel his nice big cock in my pussy tomorrow. Isnt that great?!”

Sarah crawled upstairs for the night. All Jenny could do is curl up beside Rex to keep warm. He didnt seem to mind. He hadnt marked her as his other bitch, yet but he would soon enough and then Jenny would be forced to sleep on the floor. Not only would she become his bitch but the real bitch was superior to her in Rexs eyes. She was number two on his list. She curled up and began to cry again. She knew Sarah was upstairs on her stomach sleeping and trying to keep that basterds cum on her back. She had not only given up Jenny for a cock. She had given her up for that basterds cock next door. Rex just licked her face once as she cried herself to sleep.

The next morning, Jenny was awakened by Sarah coming down the stairs. Like yesterday, Sarah was crawling across the floor and out the door. She still had dried up cum on her back.  As Sarah crawled out the door, Jenny went into a deep “despair and depression”. She no longer had any tears left. She had accepted the fact that Sarah was lost to her and had found out that she wanted a nice big cock instead of herself.

About five minutes later, Sarah crawled back in the door and rose to her feet. She had a sad look on her face.


She looked at Jenny and said: “Butch just laughed and said, “Not today, slut. Well, there is always tomorrow. Maybe hell fuck me tomorrow. I really do want his cock. I had forgotten how good it felt to have a cock In me.”



Sarah got up and grabbed Jennys food dishes and filled them up with the same as yesterday. Dog food was in one and water in the other. Sarah put them down and went to the monitor to watch the bitch for a while. She was just lying there, so Sarah went to fix her some breakfast too. Sarah went down and grabbed the bowl to fill it. She filled it up with Rexs old dog shit again and pissed in it for a nice smooth texture, then slide it in the slot and into the bitchs new home.

Sarah stopped for a minute. She began to cry and get angry. She pounded on the wall repeatedly for five minutes and all the while crying. Has Jenny been punished enough? Sarah didnt know how much longer she could take this. She knew that it needed to be done. Jenny had to feel that she was punished for being so gullible and listening to the bitch and her friends. She saw in Jennys eyes that look that she knew so well. Jenny had given up. She had accepted the fact the she had lost Sarah to her and no longer cared about anything.

It took all of Sarahs willpower to NOT go up and release Jenny. Jenny felt that she needed to be punished even though Sarah knew it was pointless. Sarah was not a psychologist but she knew that Jenny had to deal with this somehow. Her last thought gave her an idea. She would call a psychiatrist and get some help. She wiped her tears and ran upstairs to make a phone call.

As she went through the living room, she saw that Jenny had not moved or touched her food. She just sat there. Sarah went through fast to the kitchen. She didnt know if she could hold back her tears or not. She wanted to call someone but whom?? She had an idea. That creepy woman that hypnotized them was a “shrink”. She might be able to help. It would be easier too. She knew what was going on and Sarah would have to make up a story. She got excited and called her.

When Sarah finally got a hold of her, she explained the whole thing to her and asked what she could do and how much longer would she needed to be “punished” for something that she didnt do.


The woman: “It is not that simple. Jenny is the only one that knew if she had been punished enough. Normally as a mother you would be able to tell but Jenny is the one that wanted to be punished. She is the only one that knows how long but you cant ask her directly. Youll have to use your intuition and your knowledge of her to make that decision yourself. I am sorry but that is all I can tell you. I Wish I could help you more. I still would like to talk with you about how you shook off my hypnotism. If you ever change your mind, I will make it worth your while.”


Sarah: “That doesnt help much but thank you anyway. Like I have told you, how I shook off your hypnosis is a very personal thing and I will not discuss it with you or anyone. Thank you again and good bye.


Sarah was nervous and afraid. Jenny needed to be punished but not hurt. She hadnt touched her food or water. She went back into the living room and asked Jenny if she needed to go out. Jenny just shook her head no and never looked up. Sarah was not going to let this go on much longer. Jenny needed to eat.

Rex got up and walked over to Sarah and licked her hand. He went back to Jenny and rested his head on her lap and whined a little then was still. He knew something was wrong too. Sarah would try something. She commanded Jenny to get on all fours and stick her ass up for Rex. He looked like he wanted a little ass for breakfast. Jenny slowly got up and stuck her ass in Rexs face. Rex licked it at first then hopped up on Jenny and began to hump her. Jenny had a blank look on her face all the while Rex was trying to shove his cock into her.

Sarah commanded Jenny to reach back and help him get his cock into her pussy. Jenny reached back and pulled Rexs cock into her pussy. Rex was still humping like a jack-hammer while his cock slid into Jennys pussy. Rex was finally getting into the moment. His tongue was hanging out and drooling all over Jennys back. Jenny was getting horny and responding but Sarah knew that she really didnt care.

Sarah yelled at Jenny to liven things up for Rex. He didnt need a lousy fuck to start the day. Jenny began to hump back a little. Sarah said, “Thats better. Give him a good fuck and maybe hell make you cum. I think hed like it if you would cum or it might give him a complex or something. Come on girl, get into it!” Jenny closed her eyes and tried her best. Rexs cock felt good but it would NEVER be the same. She just humped back and let Rex shoot his load into her pussy. Rex grabbed her tighter for a few seconds and a shot his load, then flipped over and gave a yank to pull himself out but his knot was stuck. Sarah winced a little. She knew how much it hurt when he did that but Jenny didnt do anything. She just knelt there and waited. Finally his cock popped out with a squishy plop and he rolled over onto his bed and lay down. Jenny lay back down on the floor with her head in her hands. She looked once a t Sarah, then closed her eyes while Rexs cum simply oozed out of her pussy.

Sarah walked back down to the dark room and stormed in on the bitch. She could have easily used the hypnosis to cause her pain but that was too easy. Sarah picked her up and threw her into the wall. The air rushed out of her lungs as she fell. She pleaded with Sarah to stop but Sarah saw only a worthless piece of shit that left a trail of hurt and pain behind her and Jenny was not the first. Sarah picked her up off the floor again. The bitchs feet were not even touching the floor. Sarah knew just were to hit her to cause maximum pain yet do no permanent damage. She threw her on the floor and took every muscle that she could reach and squeezed it one at a time. After two minutes of squeezing Sarah would stomp on the muscle just hard enough so the bone wouldnt break. The muscle would cramp up for days while they healed. It was VERY painful and every muscle in the bitchs body would be agony for days. Sarah looked down at her and spat on her face and then left her screaming in pain and rolling on the floor. As Sarah closed the door she yelled, “You life from now on just got more complicated. I was always the one that stuck up for you. Jenny wanted to hurt you but I wanted to help. At this point in time all I want is to make you as miserable as you have made Jenny. You now have two people here that only want to cause you pain and suffering. Enjoy yourself, you fucking worthless piece of shit!”

Sarah sat on the stairs leading up and began to cry again. She was hoping this would help but it only made things worse. She didnt know what to do. Jenny was “falling over the edge” with Sarah holding her hand but she was slipping and Sarah didnt know how to hold on to her. She sat there desperately trying to figure a way to make things right.

She thought of the times long ago when Jenny was young and she was being punished. This was much different, though….or was it? Jenny had been punished before when she was a child and it worked out. Sarah was trying desperately to remember how it was different form this but she couldnt think straight. Her time was running out. She knew that face Jenny had when she looked at Sarah. It was the same face that she had once before when she “knew” that Jenny was lost to her. Jenny was convinced that she would never be with Sarah again and she had given up. There was no hope….no hope at all.

After about thirty minutes, Sarah had an idea. It was one last desperate attempt to make things right. It was her last chance. She put on a stern face and went upstairs and stood in front of Jenny.


Sarah: “Have you had enough, young lady? Are you aware of what you had done or do you need to be punished some more? Can I trust you to NEVER be duped by someone like that again or should I continue until you realize what you have done??!!”


Jenny Looked up but said nothing.


Sarah: “Speak to me!! Dont just sit there with a stupid look on your face. TALK TO ME DAMN IT!        Are you going to be good or are you going to continue to be stupid and let others lead you around by the nose??! Talk to me!!!”


Jenny (crying): Im sorry. I will never do anything like that again. I love you. Please let me prove it to you. I promise I will never let anyone do that to us again. I PROMISE!”


Jenny looked Sarah in the eyes but continued to cry. She was like a young dear being scolded by her mother. Sarah was hoping this worked. It seemed to but she couldnt be sure, yet.


Sarah: “OK! But you will get one last punishment for the trouble you have caused me. Get over to that table and lay down on it with your ass sticking up.”


Jenny crawled over and onto the table. She was still crying and her chain rattled all the way across the floor. Sarah got a leather strap and brought it over to the table.


Sarah: “Now you WILL stay still and in the position until I am finished with you or we will start this all over. You will also remain silent or we will start this all over. DO YOU UNDERSTAND!!??”


Jenny just nodded “yes”. Sarah laughed and said, See, you are learning already. Remember you brought this upon yourself. You have no one else to blame, not even the bitch. You will take the responsibility for your OWN actions!”

Sarah leaned back and with all her strength, let Jenny have it right on the ass. The strap left a large red mark. Jenny yelped a little when it hit her so Sarah told her that she will start over and continue to keep restarting until she remained quiet. This is all so she can learn to control herself and NOT be controlled by others. Sarah told her that she MUST learn this lesson.

Sarah leaned back and hit her again on the ass as hard a she could. It made a loud “CRACK”. Jenny jerked a little but remained silent. Sarah leaned back again and CRACK! It was leaving large red marks but wasnt breaking the skin. Sarah wanted her to feel the pain but she didnt want permanent marks. This continued until Jenny was spanked by the strap for 20 hits. Her ass was crisscrossed with red marks when Sarah told her that she was though spanking her but told Jenny to stay on the table. Sarah smiled when she noticed Jenny pussy was dripping down onto the floor.

Sarah went into the kitchen and got a salt shaker. She shook a large amount of salt all over Jennys red and marked up ass. Jenny jerked and moaned but was smart enough not to make any other sounds. The pain was incredible! Sarah told her that she could get up and that her punishment was over. Jenny slowly got up crying. She began to rub her ass but jumped when she realized that when she touched it, it made it hurt even more.


Sarah: “This will help you to remember what you have learned. I suggest you remember because the next time will be much worse and much more painful in many ways.”


Sarah spanked her lightly on the ass and yelled: “DO YOU HEAR ME GIRL OR DO I HAVE TO REPEAT MYSELF??!!


Jenny screamed in pain when Sarah hit her and said: “Yes Sarah. I hear you and will always remember. I will never do anything like that again!”


Sarah: “Promise me that you wont be so stupid, ever again. PROMISE ME!”


Jenny: “I Promise. I promise. I will NEVER do that again.”


Sarah walked over in front of Jenny and began to hug her. Sarah was afraid. She wanted Jenny back. Sarah began to cry a little bit while hugging Jenny. This was a big gamble on her part to purge Jenny of the guilt she was carrying around. It had to work. She needed Jenny back.

After they hugged for a minute, Sarah pulled away and looked Jenny in the eye and asked, “Are you ok? I think you have been punished enough unless you do something else stupid then we will have to start all over again. I think you have learned your lesson.” Jenny just nodded and said, “Yes, I have. I am sorry.”

Sarah held her head and gently pulled her in for a long passionate kiss. Jenny stopped shaking and crying and began to kiss her back. As they kissed Sarah noticed Jenny nipples getting hard against hers. She was taking things slowly. She had no guidance in what she was doing and was still afraid. As they broke their kiss Sarah led Jenny to the monitor to check on the bitch. Sarah sat down but Jenny just stood there. She would not be sitting down any time soon.

As they looked at her, she was shaking and flopping all over the floor. Sarah smiled. She knew what was going on.


Jenny: “Whats wrong with her?”


Sarah: “I put cramps in almost every one of her muscles. It is a technique that you father taught me. It causes a great deal of pain in the muscles. They cramp and pull continuously but it only lasts for a few hours. It is VERY painful!”


Jenny: “Why did you do that?”


Sarah: “I will answer that question tomorrow but for now, know that she deserves it.”


Jenny: “ok. I have another question. Why are you getting involved with Butch next door? He was always nice to me. I had no idea he is such an asshole and a basterd.  Are you going to see him from now on?”


Sarah noticed the depressed look on Jennys face and said, “No. I am not. Let me explain what happened and please understand. Please.”


Jenny: “You know that I will always understand where you are concerned and I will live with whatever decision that you make. I only want to be near you. As long as I we can be close, I will be happy.”


Tears began to run down Sarahs cheek as she explained things to Jenny. She was afraid again. She had no idea how Jenny would react to know the truth.


Sarah: “I am not seeing Butch nor will I ever see him in that way. I had asked him to do that in front of you. I wanted to let you feel what I felt when I thought I had lost you. It was suppose to be part of your punishment. Butch truly is a nice guy. He didnt want to do this and I had to talk him into it. He knew that he was hurting you somehow even though he doesnt understand the two of us. Do not blame him. He is a wonderful man and a good neighbor. Please understand. Please stay with me. I didnt know what to do and I was desperate to get you back. This was all I could think of to do.”


Jenny began to cry and got down on one knee and hugged Sarah but didnt say anything. She grabbed Sarah as tightly as she could and just cried.


Jenny: “I was convinced that I lost you. Now I know how you felt. I deserved to feel that too. It was the worst thing in the world. Any other punishment would have been bearable but that I couldnt handle. I had given up and didnt care about anything after that. I deserved that and more for putting you through that. I am sorry. I will NEVER be talked into something like that ever again! Besides my ass hurts a lot and that will keep me “honest”.


They both laughed a little but kept crying. After what seemed like hours, they broke their hug and watched the bitch on the monitor. Jenny began to feel sorry for her.


Jenny: “Cant we do something for her. I do not want her feel that. She looks like she is in agony.”


Sarah: “She IS in agony. She deserves it!”


Jenny: Please let me do something. I dont want her like that. I would like to try and change her like you do. I dont want to “break” her.”


Sarah: “At this point, “breaking” her would make the world a much better place. Bitches like her should be broken and controlled. I can see that you want to help her so we can if you wish it. There is a small container of prescription drugs in the kitchen. It is on the top, left shelf. Go and get it for me.”


Jenny ran off and got the drugs and said: “What is this stuff?”


Sarah: “It is vicaden. It is a strong painkiller and it will help. Go give her two tablets.”


Jenny got a glass of water and went down to the bitch. When she opened the door, the bitch was screaming as loud as she could. Jenny never thought anyone could scream that loud. She truly was in agony. Jenny pulled her face up and tried to talk to her. She had to slap her and yell. She got her attention long enough for her to take the pills, before Jenny left.

Jenny came back to the monitor and looked at the bitch. She was still rolling around and apparently still screaming too. Sarah snarled and said, “The pills will kill the pain. Lets check our email. (Smiling) We havent looked in on our grocery boy in a while. Tim, that boy that sucked his friends cock might have sent us something too. Lets find out.”

They got an email from both boys.


Grocery boys email: “I have only got $300. Please can I cum. PLEASE? Isnt there any way that I can cum for only $300?? PLEASE??”


Sarah (laughing): “See, Jenny, guys are slaves to their cocks. This guy will do anything we want him to just to cum. I will send him another question to answer. I suppose we could give him a little hope. We will have to think about it but for now he gets only a question that needs answering in the next 12 hours.”


Sarah: “Now lets check on Tim to see how hes doing.”


Tims Email: “Hi Ladies. I cant thank you enough for what you have done for me. You both have given me an education that I will NEVER forget. I already have a date and was wondering if I could maybe get your advice now and then?

You have also given me a “dream come true”. I have spent an afternoon with the two most beautiful women in the world. I had to give my friend a blow job but it was the least I could do for what you have given me and besides, he refuses to talk about it or even admit that it happened so he will not be a problem for me. Thank you for the pictures, though. I will keep them, just in case. Sucking his cock was not that bad. I am not gay but am not grossed out by it.

If there is anything that I can do for you, let me know. I owe you two a lot and would be happy to at least try and repay you. Let me know.

Your friend,

Tim


Jenny: “That is a sweet letter. He is a good guy. Maybe some time we could help him some more. Educating him was kind of fun. I wouldnt mind a follow up on his progress just in case he needs to be tested on what he has learned.”


Sarah (giggling): “You are right. HE is a good guy and I think we could give him a little test on what we taught him but right now, I have an idea. We could kill two birds with one stone. I will send grocery boy a second email and let him decide what he wants to do.”


Sarahs second email to the grocery boy: “Hi boy. Well give you a deal. We are feeling generous. You may cum with only $300 but here is the “catch”. You will not be allowed to touch your cock and you will be given a blow job by a guy. You will get at least one and then any more you can talk him into. After he is finished with you, you will give him a blow job back and then you will be locked back up. You will need another $300 for the guy or $500 for the two of us. IF you have the $500, we will make you cum at much as you want to for that one time. Those are you choices.

See you soon,

XOXOXO

The owners of your cock.



Sarahs letter to Tim: “It is good to hear from you. You may ask us anything you wish to. We would both be happy to help you with your date (s) in any way we can. We have a favor to ask and you do not have to feel like you need to do this. It is absolutely fine if you dont want to.

We would like you to give a guy a blow job. He will pay you $200 and you may keep it. There is no catch and it will be in private except for the two of us watching. He will try and talk you into more blow jobs and that is totally up to you. We only want you to give him the one. There will be NO tricks. We promise. After you are finished, you have to let him give you a blow job back. He MUST give you one back. That is the deal we made with him. Please consider this.

As an added bonus, we both want to give you a little test to see how much you have remembered from your education that we gave you. You can be with the two of us as long as you want to but just you and no one else. The last time your tongue was delightful. We would like to have it shoved up our pussies some more.

Let us know,

XOXO



Jenny: “That is a great idea. I would be very curious if our grocery boy wants a blow job from a guy. Just think of it. Two straight guys, one would be giving a blow job and the other receiving it.”


Sarah: “Yes. It will be fun to watch. Maybe we could lend a few pointers for them. LOL.”


Jenny (laughing): “I already have a few.LOL.


Sarah: “Now I need to change the subject a little. We have made a deal at the porn shop with the bitch downstairs and now I think we need to collect on it. I will have to teach those two girls running the shop a lesson too.”


Jenny: “What are you going to do with those two girls?”


Sarah (Smiling): “It will be a surprise. We wont even much of our own equipment. Most of what we need they will provide. We will go tomorrow. The bitch is probably still in pain. IF it werent for this little adventure we have planned, I would leave her rot down there. She has deeply hurt the botch of us and she can fuck herself for all I care.”


Jenny: “I would still like to try and change her, though. Couldnt we still work on things that way?”


Sarah: “We can if you want to. I will keep trying. IF we are going to try, you had better take her more pain killers. She only needs them until morning. The cramping is VERY painful but does not last long. Now wait here. I have one other thing to punish you with and then you are finished.”


Jenny (With a sad and fearful look): “What are you going to do? I promise I will NEVER be talked into anything again. Please, dont.”


Sarah: “It is for your own good and it will remind you of that promise.”


Sarah went into the kitchen and came back with a small white bag. She told Jenny to get on the coffee table on her stomach. Sarah spent a few seconds to admire Jennys wonderful ass. She wanted to get down and lick it all over but she had to do this first.

Sarah reached her hand into the bag and pulled out some white powder and began to rub it all over Jenneys ass. Just as Sarahs hand touched her ass, she yelled out with a loud scream and almost jumped off of the table. Sarah yelled, “Stay where you are! This is for your own good. You can scream all you want but if you move, the spankings and treatment will start all over.”

Sarah took another handful and rubbed it all over and into Jennys ass. She kept on screaming. It apparently was VERY painful. That was not surprising. Sarah was rubbing a brand new supply of salt into Jennys ass. It hadnt even stopped stinging from the first time, yet.

After the third time Sarah quit. Jenny continued to scream but stayed put in the table. She even tried to rub her ass but when she did, it just hurt more. The pain was steady and intense. It reminded her of what she had done. She still felt she deserved it…and more. Sarah grabbed her hand and pulled her onto her feet. Jenny was wincing in pain and wasnt standing up straight but held onto Sarahs hand.

Sarah told Jenny to feed the bitch for the last time today. They needed to get up early tomorrow and take care of business at the porn shop. As they walked upstairs, Jenny was limping funny and moaning a little. Sarah pulled her into bed and told her to lie on her back so she could get her evening snack. Jenny said, Please, not on my back.”


Sarah: “ok. I wont put you on your back. We will do this a different way. I will chain you up downstairs so you wont be on your back.” 


Jenny: “Thank you. My ass is really sore.”


Sarah led jenny back downstairs. She hooked up Jennys arms and legs to bolts in the ceiling so she was hanging, spread eagle facing up. Sarah also hooked up the harness for her head to support it. It was a truly unique device. It supported the head but didnt block and thing. The eyes, ears, nose and mouth were completely clear. Jenny started to ask something but Sarah shoved the ball gag in her mouth and locked it up on the back of her head.

All Jenny could do is look at her wide eyed and wonder.  Her ass was still very sore from all the salt Sarah was rubbing into it. She simply watched Sarah go into the kitchen and then return in about two minutes. She was carrying something but Jenny couldnt tell what it was.


Sarah: “You have been punished enough and I believe you have learned you lesson. Is that right?”


Jenny just nodded and grunted “mmm hmm.”



Sarah: “Thats good. I have a little plan. I feel like giving the bitch another lesson tonight. I was going to have some fun with you, first but I want to take care of her first. Would that be ok with you?”


Jenny: “mmf hmmm.”


Sarah: “Good. I want to tan her ass like yours except hers will be much worse. Besides, I think your ass is hurting enough. Do you mind if I let you just hang there until I can get back to you?”


Jenny began to shake her head “NO” several times. She was getting very agitated about it and kept shaking her head “NO”!


Sarah: “I know what youre thinking. You dont want the bitch to see you like this?”


Jenny Kept shaking her head “NO”!


Sarah: “I dont think I want her to see you either. It is tempting but she doesnt deserve to see you at all. I will take care of it and I wont have to let you down. It takes too much work to put you up and let you down and I have a plan for you.”


Sarah walked out and came back with the bitch a minute later. The bitch was still in pain and having a little trouble walking. All her muscles were still cramping but not quite as bad as before. Jenny was a little afraid. She desperately didnt want the bitch to see her like this. She relaxed when she saw Sarah pulling the bitch by the collar. The bitch had a hooded blindfold on her head and the hood hand a gag built into it also. Sarah pulled her along and purposely bumped her ankles into the coffee table. When the bitch bent down Sarah pushed her face down on the table and strapped her arms and legs to the table legs. She was tied down, arms and knees spread and tied to the table legs with her ass and cunt sticking up. She was a nice target.

Sarah picked up a leather strap that she had been soaking in a salt water solution for the last two days. Sarah looked at Jenny and winked. Sarah pulled Jennys head around so she could watch. Sarah kissed Jenny on the cheek and saw Jenny attempt to smile through the gag she had in her mouth. Jenny was hoping the bitch would get beaten within an inch of her life. She happily watched.

Sarah leaned over to the bitchs ears and said, “Scream all you want to. No one can hear you anyway. This will give you even more to think about. You will continue to feel all the pain you have put us through. Enjoy.

Sarah held the strap back and hit the bitch on the ass as hard as she could. The result was immediate! The bitch let out a scream that would have blown their windows out if she wasnt gagged.  Sarah hit her again and again. She hit her twenty strokes before she took a rest. The bitch just continued to scream and scream. Sarah had to lean down to her ears to talk to her. The hood covered her ears quite a bit.


Sarah said to her: “Are you getting the message, yet? You will feel all of our pain and more. I am sure that you have caused others pain too. You will not be killed if thats what you think but if you dont change, you will wish you were dead. You would do well to take this to heart and give it all serious thought or the pain will get worse.”


Sarah began to spank the bitch all over again. She kept hitting her as hard as she could and Sarah was quite a bit stronger than most people. She was even stronger that most men. Soon she began to draw blood. The bitch was struggling and screaming. There were cuts crisscrossing her ass and they were all bleeding. Every cut was being bombarded with salt. The salt from the strap was being forced into the cuts on her ass. Jenny was watching and smiling. She was even forgetting her own pain and enjoying watching the bitch get her ass whipped. The bitchs ass was beginning to look like hamburger by the time Sarah had stopped. There was a puddle of blood on the floor and botch Jenny and Sarah knew that salt was embedded in the cuts on her ass. The pain was so great that the bitch had passed out.

Sarah laughed and said, “That should take care of her lesson for today. Tomorrow will be another lesson. It will be interesting how she takes to her new adventure.”

Sarah untied the bitch, took of her hood and carried her back to the dark room and threw her on the floor. Sarah smiled and slammed the door shut. The bitch would be in great pain for a while. Her muscles were still cramping, although not as bad now and her ass would be in pain for days. It was another lesson in a long list in her education.

Sarah went back upstairs, straightened out Jennys head and preceded with her fun. Sarah knew Jennys ass was still hurting and she wanted to try something else to see what Jenny would do. Sarah got a large vibrator along with two bottles of the hottest sauce that was available. Jenny saw the sauce and struggled in her bonds, screamed into her gag and shook her head all at once. Sarah giggled a little bit kissed her on the cheek and said, “Dont get excited. This will make me happy. You DO want me to be happy, dont you? I want to know what this will feel like and you can let me know.”

Jenny moaned a little and nodded her head: yes”. She was terribly afraid of this new pain but she truly wanted Sarah to be happy. She had wowed that she would do anything for Sarah. She had no choice. Even if she wasnt tied down, she would let Sarah do this to her but she was glad she was. She knew that she would not be able to control herself with all this pain.

Sarah took the first bottle and shoved it up her pussy and when it was empty; she shoved the second one up her pussy and emptied it. She quickly shoved the vibrator up her pussy, turned it on and use some duct tape across her pussy to hold it all in. Sarah taped it up so her pussy was covered but her clit was still available. At first Sarah just watched for a minute or two until Jenny was beginning to feel the hot sauce up her pussy.

Suddenly Jenny felt the sauce enter her. It felt good and cool at first but that didnt last long. About thirty seconds later her pussy began to heat up and a minute later, it felt like it was on fire. Between her ass and her pussy, which was now on fire, Jenny was in great pain. She was flopping around and pulling on her bonds as hard a she could. She was screaming as loud as she could, although the gag muffled almost all of her screaming. Her ass still hurt but it wasnt anywhere near the pain she felt now with her pussy on fire.

Sarah watched for a minute and then moved around so her pussy was right in front of her. Sarah leaned down and began to lick her clit and as much of her pussy as she could with the tape and vibrator in her. Sarah was having fun. Jennys pussy juice was now mixed with the hot sauce. It was a new taste. It was interesting but Sarah would always prefer Jennys pussy juice straight. Sarah licked hard and fast. She wanted to make Jenny cum while in all this pain.

Jenny suddenly felt a new sensation. Along with all the pain, there was a wave of pleasure with it. The pain was much greater but soon the pleasure of her pussy being licked was becoming greater than her pain. The pain now was her friend and she wished it was even greater. It was making this wave of pleasure much more than it normally would be. Jenny was still shaking around in her bonds and screaming but now there was a difference. There was pleasure mixed in with the pain. Sarah noticed it right away. She licked even hard and faster. She wasnt trying to tease her. She wanted to know if the pain would help. She didnt have wait long to wait. Jennys eyes rolled back into her head. She was feeling the maximum intensity of both worlds. She was feeling the hell of the pain and the heaven of Cumming. The vibrator made things that much better. It was mixing the hot sauce and shoving it around and at the same time making her horny as hell and she wanted to cum, badly. Sarah felt the rush of pussy juice and hot sauce oozing form around the tape. Jenny was Cumming like a street whore being gang banged! While she was Cumming, Sarah ripped of the tape and yanked out the vibrator. Sarah immediately rammed her mouth onto Jennys pussy and began to suck all the hot sauce out. Jenny just kept shaking and screaming. Sarah didnt know if it was pleasure or pain but she would ask later.

Sarah was sucking and licking like she was starving to death. Finally Jenny calmed down. Apparently Sarah had gotten most of the hot sauce out of Jennys pussy and her pussy was cooling down quite a bit. Sarah began to move up and lick and kiss her way up Jennys stomach while fingering her pussy. Jenny began to moan all over again. Sarah moved her way up to Jennys tits and sucked on them and nibbled on them for a minute while still fingering her. It didnt take Jenny long. The pain was much less but still there and was mixing with the feelings rushing out form her pussy. She began to cum all over again and shake in her bonds. Sarah knew she was Cumming again and bit down on her nipples and shoved her fingers up her pussy. Finally after Jennys second round, Sarah stepped back and noticed that Jenny was breathing heavy and passed out cold.

Sarah took some water and rinsed out Jennys pussy and then undid all of Jennys bonds and laid her on the couch, face down. She took her gag out, wiped hr ass down to get the salt off and then began to apply some healing ointment to her ass.  Jenny moaned a little while waking up. She yelped a little bit but soon realized she was on the couch. Her pussy was cooled off and Sarah was applying ointment to her ass. Sarah leaned down and kissed her on her ass just as Jenny let out a moan of relief and pleasure.  Jenny fell back into the world of unconsciousness.

Sarah took her up to bed and laid her face down. She climbed into bed with her and wrapped her arms around her and both of them were asleep.

The next morning, Jenny awoke to Sarah applying more ointment to her ass. It felt good and the pain was all but gone. Sarah leaned over, spread her ass cheeks and licked Jenny from pussy all the way past her ass hole and up her back. She kissed each cheek and then helped Jenny up and into the shower. Jenny felt the last of the pain go down the drain with the water. Her and Sarah had one long kiss and then went downstairs.

They sat down by the monitor to check on the bitch. She was by her toilet trying to wash her ass off with water.


Jenny laughed and said: “It looks like she didnt sleep much last night, doesnt it?”


Sarah (smiling): “nope”


Jenny: “GOOD! The bitch deserves to be miserable!”


Sarah: “We need to get her ready, though. She has a date at the porn shop. I need to take care of those smart ass girls down there too.”


Jenny: “What are you going to do with the girls, there?”


Sarah (laughing): “Youll see!”




……and the fun began!

















       



       

       




       



       



       


       

       








Cindys Lessons   Part 10


Sarah and Jenny went down to the dark room to get the bitch. When they walked in on her she was curled up on the floor moaning and groaning. There were little trails of blood running from the toilet to her bed. There was a small puddle of blood on the floor beneath her also. Sarah looked at her and said, “DAMN! Now we have to clean this up.” Jenny said, “Leave it. She can clean it up later. If she does and if she cooperates at the porn shop, maybe she can earn a little reward.” Sarah replied, “Sounds good, now lets get her upstairs and clean her up.”

       They blindfolded her and dragged her upstairs. She didnt fight them or even say anything. She half walked and was half dragged and flopped on the floor in the living room.


       Sarah: “Come on. Lets go get the hose and the cleaning stuff for her.”


       Jenny: “Shouldnt we lock her up?”


       Sarah: “No. Shell be ok. Lets go.”


       Sarah and Jenny got the bucket, rages, soap and hose all ready and went back to get the bitch and clean her up. She was a dirty mess. When they got back to the living room, they saw the bitch curled up on her bed resting but awake. Sarah reached down and, for once, gently helped her up and walked her outside. The bitch didnt fight or say anything. She just got down on hands and knees and waited. She looked like a lost puppy and it didnt go unnoticed. Jenny didnt care but Sarah didnt like it. She was acting very similar to Jenny when she had given up. The bitch seemed to be going into a depression and thats not what Sarah wanted. She was angry with her but still wanted to try and change her and NOT break her. Sarah began to give it some more thought.

       Sarah told Jenny that she wanted to clean her up by herself and asked Jenny to wait while she did. Sarah began to lather her up, quite a bit more gently than normal. She was hoping the bitch would respond a little but she just stayed there on all fours and didnt seem to respond. Sarah continued to gently wash her off. She paused on her tits and her ass and cunt. She was especially gentle on her ass. It was quite scared up but not bleeding anymore. She rubbed her cunt back and forth and ran her fingers in and out for a little bit longer than what was normal. The bitch moved a little but otherwise did nothing. Sarah told her to stand up as she took a towel and dried the bitch off. Once again, the bitch didnt respond. Sarah was rethinking her plans for the bitch. She was hoping she would respond in some way. She wasnt even calling them names anymore.

       Jenny and Sarah took her back inside. Sarah told Jenny to dry and fix her hair. She also told her to be nice to her, this time. The bitch needed to know that good behavior meant reward. Jenny grumbled a little but knew what Sarah meant, so she began to dry and fix her hair.

       Jenny sat the bitch down on a chair and began to comb and dry her hair. She winced a little when she sat down. Her ass was very sore, still. Jenny even got lost in the job a little. She wasnt as angry and it seemed to be helping both of them. Sarah kept watching closely and noticed that the bitch began to cry a little. She made no noise but tears were running down her cheeks. Jenny didnt notice. She just kept combing her hair and making it look nice. Jenny could have been fixing a friends hair if anyone would have watched them. You couldnt tell that Jenny hated the bitch.

       Jenny took her time. It was the way she fixed others hair. Sarah had always noticed that it seemed to relax her. When she was finished, she put the last comb and curls in just the right spot and went around looking at her form the front. She got close and fluffed her hair in a couple of spots then backed up to check it out.

       Jenny went to Sarah and asked her what she thought. As she walked away, the bitch said quietly, “Thank you”. She stiffened up because he last time she thanked Jenny for this, she yelled nothing but “hate” at her but she was truly grateful for having her hair done. Jenny glared at her for a second and then said, “Your welcome”.

       Sarah smiled at Jenny and then walked in front of the bitch to get a good look at her. She took the bitchs hand and led to a mirror to see herself. She still had the small locks in her nose and nipples and Sarah noticed that she stared at them for a few seconds before she looked up at her hair.


       Sarah: “What do you think? Jenny does a pretty good job with peoples hair.”


       Bitch (meekly): “It is nice. Jenny does a good job. Thank you.”


       Sarah (taking her hand): “Come. Fallow me. Lay on the couch on you stomach.”



       Sarah led the bitch to the couch and gently pushed her down on her stomach. The bitch began to cry again. She knew she was going to get her ass wiped some more. It was still painful from the last time. She just couldnt take anymore. She began to cry out loud. She knew she was suppose to keep quiet until spoken to but she kept drying.


       Bitch: “Please dont. I cant take anymore. I will do whatever you say. I will not fight you nor disobey you. Please…Please dont”


       Sarah: “SHHHHH”.


       The bitch stayed quiet but kept crying. She had no choice but to take it. Her only hope was to pass out and not feel it all. She cried.

       Suddenly she felt something on her ass. She yelled but soon stopped. The touch on her ass was soft and cool. The bitch mewed like a little kitten but kept crying. Sarah was not going to whip her but was spreading a very strong prescription healing ointment on her ass. Sarah rubbed it in very gently. She knew that pushing too hard would be painful and at this point wanted the bitch to get a small reward. Sarah wanted her to realize that the rest of her life was not necessarily going to be torture and pain.

       Jenny just watched from the side but said nothing. She also realized why Sarah was doing this and was hoping it would help. Sarah rubbed the ointment on her ass for twenty minutes before stopping. Jenny looked at the bitch and then at Sarah. They noticed that she was asleep but still crying a little bit. The two of them left her alone and went into the kitchen.


       Sarah: “We need to trust her a little bit and to show her that it is right to be good to people and not hurt people continuously.”


       Jenny: “Havent we been hurting her this whole time, just like she does?”


       Sarah: “that was to show her what others felt like because of her. This is to show her that when she is kind to others and they are kind to her, that there is a big difference than what she was like before. She is still thick headed and I hope she learns this particular lesson. We will let her sleep.

I have a plan for the porn shop. We will make use of the bitch today but tomorrow we will take care of those two girls that run the place. I am looking forward to that! We have already set things up for her (the bitch). All we need to do is take her there and set it up. We will only need a couple of short chains and some hand cuffs for today.”



Sarah and Jenny got everything ready and waited for the bitch to wake up. They could have awoken her but they both agreed to let her sleep and to wake up on her own.

About an hour later, the bitch woke up. Sarah and Jenny heard her moaning a little and went to see how she was doing. Sarah touched her ass and she yelped a little. It was still sore. Sarah told Jenny to go get the ointment. She wanted to apply more to her ass. When Jenny returned Sarah told her to apply it to the bitchs ass. Sarah had something to go do, yet.

Jenny watched Sarah leave and began to spread ointment on her ass. She groaned a little but soon was mewing like a kitten. It obviously was helping. Jenny hated this bitch but at this point, she wanted to help her. She mumbled to herself,”IF only she could realize the pain she caused others. I hope she changes. I do not want to cause her the same pain she did to us.” She continued to apply the ointment.

Sarah did not really leave. She was listening around the corner. She smiled to herself. She was desperately hoping that Jenny wanted the same thing that she did. It seems they both wanted to change her and not break her. Like she had said before, “The world would be a brighter place if the bitch would truly change.”

Sarah came around the corner and pulled Jenny up and gave her a big hug. There was a tear running down Sarahs cheek.


Jenny asked, “Whats wrong?”


Sarah: “Nothing is wrong anymore. I am proud of you and proud to be your friend and lover. I love you.”


Jenny (Confused): “I love you too but why are you crying?”


Sarah: “I heard what you just said. I have always hoped you would want to help her. I was always worried that you simply wanted revenge. I do too but this is a better way. We are not like her! To simply take revenge upon her would make us no better than her. Let me talk to her for a while before we go.”


Sarah: “Bitch. DO you hear me?”


The bitch was still lying on her stomach but replied: “Yes Sarah. I hear you. I want to thank you two very much for your kindness. I will do whatever you say. Please dont hurt me anymore. Please?”


Sarah: “We do not want to hurt you. We want you to realize the pain you have caused others and the pain you have caused Jenny and me. DO you have any idea what you do to others??”


Bitch: “I was angry with you both for imprisoning me but I have thought a lot about my past while laying in the dark. I will obey you and accept your judgment as to how much I need to be punished for my selfishness. I think I deserve a lot of this. Is this truly what others felt??”


Sarah: “Yes. It is. The pain you cause is real.”


The bitch started crying and said: “I am sorry. I am sorry.”


Jenny looked at the bitch and then at Sarah and said: “Maybe we should not take her down there today.”


Sarah: “We will take her today but we will not be cruel about things. She will obey yet we will not put her through any physical pain as long as she is good.”


Jenny: “ok”


Sarah: “Today we will do what we planned with the bitch. Tomorrow we will do what I have planned with those two sluts that run that porn shop. Be nice to them today and let them think they are dominant over us. It will help us for tomorrow.”


Jenny: “OK”


Sarah (to bitch): “If you are good today and do what your told, you will have the pleasure of seeing two other bitches get whats coming to them.”


Bitch: “I will be good. I will do what you wish.”


Sarah: “Lets go.”


Sarah and Jenny got into the front seat of the car and the bitch was sitting in the back, naked of course with no clothes for her at all. Jenny and Sarah had their short skirts and tight tops on. They still like to show themselves off for others but they wanted to play along with the girls in the porn shop too. They arrived at the porn shop and lead the bitch inside. The two girls were at the counter as usual.


       Girl one: “I see you kept your word and brought your little whore with you. Things are all set up in back. We have been advertising our special today. I am glad you brought her. Does she know that she is on the menu?”


       Sarah: “No, she doesnt but she will find out soon enough.”


       Girl two: “Go ahead and take her back.”


       Sarah and Jenny took the bitch back to one of the small video booths in the back. They took her into one of them. It was empty except it had a small hole in one of the walls that was about 3 inches in diameter. The hole was at waist level and next to the hole on each side was a heavy eye bolt attached to the wall. Sarah told the bitch to get on her knees in front of the hole. She tied the bitchs hands behind her back with heavy leather straps. They attached her collar to the eye bolts with two other leather straps and lock them all up with small locks. Her neck was now locked to the wall so that her mouth could only be pulled back about nine inches from the hole.

       


       Sarah: “You are the special today. There will be a lot of cocks coming through that hole today and you will give each one the best blow job that you can. When they leave they will rate you performance on a scale from one to ten. For every point you get below six, you will spend a week in the dark room. I suggest you suck each one as if your life depended on it and make sure they all leave here happy. We will be back later today. Enjoy.”


       On the way out, Jenny leaned down and kissed the bitch on the forehead, then closed the door and left. The bitch was all alone in the dark staring at the hole in the wall. There was a dim light coming through the hole from the other booth.

       Sarah and Jenny went back out to the lobby. Sarah told the girls that they could have any money that the bitch earned but that she had better NOT be harmed! The girls laughed and said, “Dont worry. We will keep our promise. She has gotten a lot of requests. We have a lot of customers coming in today. The word has been spreading and all the horny guys in town will be here today.

       

Sarah smiled and said: “Thats good. She is a thirsty bitch when it comes to guys cum. She likes to swallow as much as she can.”


Girl two: “Good! We will see you two later. We will make sure they give us a report of her performance. It will be as you said a score of one to ten.”


Sarah: “Very good. Bye for now.”


Sarah and Jenny walked out and left. It didnt take long for the guys to start showing up. Three came in only ten minutes after Sarah and Jenny left. The girls told them that it will cost them $50 each for their special of the day. The first guy paid and went back to the booth labeled “special”. HE went into the booth and began to watch the movie inside and when he saw the hole he dropped his pants and stuck his cock through and knocked on the wall.

The bitch was grossed out but was determined NOT to spend time in that dark room. She stuck his cock into her mouth like she was starving to death and licked and sucked as best that she knew how. The guy was horny as hell and it didnt take long. Soon he shot his load down her throat. She had no choice but to swallow. The straps held her so close that she couldnt pull back far enough to pull her mouth off his cock. His load squirted down her throat like a fire hose. She heard him grunting and groaning. When he was finished, the bitch heard him bang on the wall. She didnt know what he wanted until she heard his voice command her to clean him up. She licked some more and cleaned him up as best she could. After she was finished he pulled out of the hole and left.

A minute later another guy stuck his cock threw the hole and banged on the wall. She put her mouth over the next cock and began to suck it like the other one. She sucked like a mad woman. She didnt want to go back down to that dark room for any length of time and certainly not for “weeks”. Her hands were tied so she couldnt use her hands to help. All she could do is suck and lick the best that she could.

Cock after cock came through that hole. She had no idea how long she was in that booth but she knew she had sucked and licked at least 30 cocks and she had NO idea who they all were. She had a belly full of cum to prove it and she even liked it. She hadnt been getting much food lately and what she did get was either dog shit or people shit. After eating shit, this cum tasted good and she wanted more. She was actually hoping that the supply of cocks wouldnt run out. Her mouth was getting sore and tired but she still wanted more.

She could hear them moan and yell at her through the wall. They were all calling her every name in the book, “fucking whore”, “Slut”, “bitch” and many more. She didnt care as long as the cocks kept coming through the hole for her.

Sarah and Jenny returned a few hours later.


Sarah: “How is the bitch doing?”


Girl one: “She must be doing well. Shes made us a lot of money today. Would you consider leaving her here permanently?”


Before Sarah could respond, Jenny said: “No. We have plans for her. She is ours.”


Sarah smiled at Jenny and held her hand. They both looked at each other and smiled. It appeared to them that they were thinking the same thing. There was NO WAY those two would get their ugly hands on her.


Sarah: How did she do? What are her scores so far?”


Girl two: “Shes doing excellent! No one gave her less than an eight and then it was only one guy. All the rest were nines and tens.”


Jenny: “Sounds good. Were taking her back now. A deal is a deal. The money is all yours.”


Both Sarah and Jenny were glad they didnt have to lock her back up for weeks. Jenny was regretting it already until she heard the bitchs scores.

Sarah went back and opened the booth where the bitch was. When she looked in, she saw the bitch with her mouth hanging open. It was obviously sore and tired but what got her attention was that she had cum all over her face and dripping down her chin and tits. She looked up at Sarah, smiled and asked, “How did I do? I was trying to do the best that I could. I hope they all were happy.”

Sarah unhooked her and helped her stand up. She put a leash on her and led her out of the back rooms. On the way out she told the bitch, “You did very well. We are proud of you. You seemed to be a good cock sucker. That should make you proud too.” The bitch just smiled and said, “Thank you. I am glad to be learning something.”

Sarah looked at her for a second, and then pulled her up to the front counter. The two girls just laughed for a minute and finally one of them said, “Look at that Fucking whore! She makes us all kind of money and all she gets is a stomach full of strangers cum. She sucked over 40 cocks this afternoon and has NO idea who they were.” The two of them laughed even harder for a minute.


Sarah gave them a dirty look and said: “We will be going for today. We will be back tomorrow with her, if its ok with you two.”


Girls: “Sure thing! Bring her back. Shes a big money maker, especially now that our regular customers know about her.”


Sarah led the bitch out to the car with jenny fallowing behind. Jenny was looking at the bitch as she was limping across the stones. She knew that her feet were hurting and her knees were too from kneeling all afternoon. Sarah opened the trunk and told the bitch to get in. She crawled in slowly. When she was in, Sarah locked her collar to the spare wheel bolt with a chain she had with her. She didnt give the bitch much slack in the chain. There was only about 6 inches of slack. The only way she could get in was to get on her hands and knees with her head down near the floor of the trunk. The bitch didnt feel sad. She knew that she did well today and that Sarah and Jenny couldnt be too angry with her. She was hoping they would let her suck more cocks. It was filling and much better than the food they were giving her. She told herself that she would ask them as soon as she could. Sarah and Jenny drove off and headed home.


Sarah: “Jenny, What do you think we should do with her now?”


Jenny: “She still needs more education but she is getting better. I think we should show her some rewards when she does well. Why did you put her into the trunk?”


Sarah: “You are right. She is getting better and we should give her a little reward. It will show her that when she is nice to others, they will be nice to her and not simply because they want something but because they truly like her. I put her in the trunk because I didnt want her to hear us.”


Jenny: “What about those two girls in the porn shop? I thought we were going to teach them a lesson too.”


Sarah: “We are but not until tomorrow. In the mean time, we need to check on Tim and our little grocery boy and see if he wants to be sucked by a guy or not.”


Jenny: “I am curious about that. It will be interesting to know if one guy will suck another for money and another simply so he can cum, himself.”


Sarah: “I am curious too. I hope Tim will do it for us. We will certainly make it worth his while. I love only your tongue and if you dont want his in me, I will obey only you. You own my pussy and have the right to decide.”


Jenny: “My pussy is yours also. My pussy will ALWAYS belong to you. You never have to ever ask. You will always be the one to decide what goes in my pussy.  I will let him lick you because I know he only wants to please you. If I thought he wanted to just get his “rocks” off, I would never let him near your pussy. I miss you taste. Its been too long since I have tasted your delicious juices.”


Sarah: “Then its settled. I feel the same about your pussy. I believe he is a good person and he will try his best to make you cum and that is more important to me than anything else. I have missed your juices too.”


Sarah pulled the car over and shut off the engine. Jenny looked at her curiously be smiled and closed her eyes when Sarah dove to the floor, spread her legs and shoved her tongue into Jennys wet and waiting pussy. It was a tight fit but Sarah didnt care at all. Jennys pleasure was the only thing that mattered. She stuck her tongue in as far as it would go. She put her mouth over her entire pussy and sucked hard enough to make a perfect airtight seal. Sarah sucked as hard as she could while shoving her tongue in and out as fast as she could. The result was terrific!

Jenny grabbed Sarahs head and pulled it to her crotch as hard as she could and screamed like her ass was on fire. She screamed and moaned for about two minutes before she calmed down. Sarah was an expert at this and didnt spill a drop of precious pussy juice. She looked up at Jenny and smiled. Sarah kissed Jenny on each thigh and kissed her way up her stomach, tits and gave her a long wet kiss tongue filled kiss.


Jenny: “That was wonderful! I love you. May I please return the favor?”


Sarah: “You never have to ask. This pussy is yours. It is only attached to me. I keep it fresh and clean for you, always!”


Jenny told Sarah to lean over the front seat with her head forward and face down with her ass on top of the back of the seat and her legs spread and hanging down in the back seat. After Sarah was in position, Jenny sat down in the back seat and was quite comfortable. She had a perfect view of Sarahs ass and pussy. It looked absolutely delicious. It was all Jenny could do to keep from diving in. She wanted Sarah so bad but she had another plan.

Jenny slowly licked her way from Sarahs pussy and all the way up across her ass hole. Jenny had spread her cheeks wide open for better access. Jenny began to lick and kiss up and down for top to bottom for a long time. Sarah just wiggled and moaned. Finally after about 30 minutes of this, Sarah begged, “Please. Please Jenny. I need it. I need your tongue up my pussy, HARD! Please?”

Jenny laughed and pinched her pussy lips together hard enough so Sarah yelped.


Jenny: “I have gotten my lunch for now. This is MY pussy, you know. I will decide what to do with it.”


Jenny rubbed it a little more while she was talking to Sarah. All Sarah could do is moan and wiggle around.


Jenny: “I will tell you what. If you are a good girl and stay like that all the way home, I will continue to lick that wonderful pussy of yours that now belongs to me. Is it a deal?”


Sarah: “YES! YES! Anything you want. I will stay here. Please hurry home.”


Jenny got into the front seat and began to drive home. Jenny not only took a long way home she drove the speed limit and no more. At one point a small truck went past them on the road. There were two guys in the truck and they honked the horn and waved.


Sarah: “Who is that?”


Jenny: “They are two guys that simply want to look at your ass and “MY” pussy. Stick it up for them so they can see better.”


Sarah put her hands and feet on the seats and pushed her ass up farther. The guys in the truck just honked the horn and gave them the thumbs up sign. The truck stayed with them for a few miles before they passed Jenny and Sarah. Jenny even slapped Sarah on the ass a few times as they pulled away. They honked and speed past.

Jenny laughed and said, “That was fun. I think I will find some more people to entertain.”  Jenny rubbed Sarahs pussy a little more and told Sarah that she would enjoy showing off “HER” pussy for a while. Sarah simply moaned and groaned with lust as Jenny rubbed what used to be Sarahs pussy and was now Jennys to do with as she pleased.

Jenny drove on with Sarahs ass sticking up for all to see. She was looking for another car or truck. She didnt have to wait long. The road she was on was not a main road but it did have traffic. She pulled up to a car and saw that it had two teenagers in it. They were both girls. They saw Sarah ass sticking up and got a nice view of her (now Jennys) pussy too.

The two of them laughed and pointed. They were obviously amused. They made a sign for Jenny to pull over. Jenny nodded and pulled to the side of the road. The two girls got out of the car and walked toward her car. Jenny rubbed Sarahs pussy that now belonged to her, slapped her ass and told her to stay in that position or she would never cum. Sarah just moaned and said, “I will stay here as you wish. Please hurry.”


Jenny: “Dont you go and get demanding on me. (rubbing Sarahs pussy) This pussy is now mine. I will do with it what I want to and dont go telling me what I can do or not do with my property. UNDERSTAND? Now keep your mouth shut!”


Sarah (moaning): “Yes. I understand.”


Jenny got out of the car and met the girls.


Girls: What is she doing? Why is she like that?”


Jenny (pointing to Sarahs pussy): See that pussy? It belongs to me and I do whatever I want with it.”


Girls: “That is great. We are in a fraternity and you have just given us an idea for our new members to earn their way in the frat. May we get a closer look at “your” pussy?”


Jenny: “Sure thing. Just dont rub it too much. I dont want it making a mess all over the car. You can touch all you want just dont let it cum.”


Girls: “ok. Thanks.”


The two girls got into the car form each side. They looked at Sarah carefully before fondeling and pinching her nipples. They each grabbed a nipple and pinched as hard as they could. Sarah just yelped but said nothing. They got into the back seat to get a better view of “Jennys” pussy. One spread Sarahs cheeks and the other stuck her fingers up into Sarah. Sarah could only moan and wiggle around. Both girls took turns at sticking their fingers up Sarahs pussy before they seemed satisfied. Before they left they wiped their hands on Sarahs ass and got out.


Girls: “Thank you. That is a very nice pussy you have there. We will be sure to get one of our own. Thank you again. May we get a picture of it? That beautiful red pussy will look nice in the entryway to our frat-house.”


Jenny: “Sure. Go ahead. I am proud of it. I would enjoy the thought of that pussy of mine on the wall of someones home. In fact that is a good idea. I think I will hang a few photos myself. It is nice to have met you.”


Girls: “Nice to have met you too. If you ever need a baby sitter for that pussy of yours, let us know. We would be happy to take care of it for you. Here are our names and were our house is.”


Jenny: “Thank you. Maybe I will take you up on your offer. I will be in touch. Bye for now.”


Girls: “Bye for now.”


Jenny got back into the car and drove off. She said to Sarah,” I think I just made some new friends. There may be a time when I will need a baby sitter for that pussy of mine. I wouldnt want you to play with it too much and they would be sure to keep an eye on you so you dont.”

Sarah still had her ass sticking up when Jenny drove into the driveway. Jenny pinched Sarah on the ass and told her to get up and to let the bitch inside. Sarah groaned a little while getting up. 

She brought the bitch inside and told her to sit in the corner by her little bed. Rex came over and sniffed the bitchs ass and ten licked it for a minute. The bitch just stuck her ass up. She always enjoyed Rexs licking and fucking. She had accepted Rex as her master. HE could have her whenever he wished and she would try her best to make him happy. Jenny and Sarah went into the kitchen. They didnt want the bitch to hear them.


Sarah: “Please let me cum. I know it is your pussy now but……..Please??”


Jenny: “I was going to in a little while but now you will have to wait. I dont like that begging all the time. I have never had such begging as to have someone want me to play with my toys. Now what are we going to do about the bitch?”


Sarah (Tense and whining): “Leave her there for now. I want to check our email and see what Tim and the grocery boy have decided.”


Sarah and Jenny checked their email and got a pleasant surprise. They figured the grocery boy would agree. He was desperate and horny. They werent sure if Tim would agree. They truly liked him and would never deceive or trick him into anything. They both agreed to the terms. Tim had come through for them. Jenny and Sarah were both determined to repay him. Sarah sent an email to the both of them to meet them tomorrow at the parking lot where the grocery boy lived. Sarah told the boy that if there were any tricks, that he would NEVER have an orgasm as long as he lived! She told him that they wouldnt have the key with them so if he tried to bring help to get it from them he would NEVER have an orgasm again!


Jenny: “That should do it. Tomorrow we have some fun but for now, the bitch.”


Sarah (Still squirming. She was so horny.): “Yes, lets go take care of the bitch.”


They went into the living room and looked down at the bitch. Rex was sitting by her. He was licking the cum off her face and chest. They notice that if she moved, he growled at her. He was angry at her for being with another male. She belonged to him and NO ONE else!

Jenny laughed when she realize why he was growling at her. Sarah told Jenny that they had better leave them alone for a while. They needed to work it out between them. It was between Rex and his bitch.

It was about a half hour later when they noticed Rex and his bitch laying down together. The bitch had her arms around Rex and he was sleeping. Sarah went over and petted Rex and told him to go in the kitchen. He obeyed. Sarah and Jenny were his masters and he knew it. He licked the bitch on the face and walked out of the room. He obviously forgave her. She was lucky. Rex was a good dog.

Sarah told the bitch to crawl over to the couch where she and Jenny were sitting. She told the bitch to sit up for them. They wanted to talk with her.


Sarah: “What do think about today, bitch? What have you learned?”


Bitch: “I want to thank you for letting me out of the dark room. I was afraid at first but very soon was enjoying the idea of pleasing other people even though I had NO idea who they were. Thank you for letting swallow all of that cum. I was hungry and it tasted good. Is there any way that I can go back and get some more?  Forgive me but the food you have been giving me was not very good but I did eat it and didnt complain and I will continue to eat whatever you prepare for me.

I am truly sorry for everything I have down to other people just to satisfy my own selfish needs and I am especially sorry I hurt you two. I deserve everything you have done to me and more. Thank you for what you have taught me.”


The bitch sat down on her knees on the floor and looked down and waited. Her ass was still sore and scared up. Sarah and Jenny looked at each other and then Sarah said to Jenny, “Its up to you. She hurt you more than me. You decide how much we have to teach her.”


Jenny: “I think we should keep this up indefinitely. She is making progress but I dont believe a word of this. She is a born liar. She will continue in our little school for a long time, yet.”


Sarah: “Very well. Bitch, you have heard our decision. You will become very familiar with you little dark bedroom. We have taken you tongue ring out for you. I think it was more than generous of us. IF you are a good little bitch, maybe we will let you whore yourself out. Would you like that, bitch?”


Bitch: “I would like that very much. I will do my best to earn it. Thank you. Thank you.”


Jenny: “You are being to kind to her, Sarah. If it were up to me, she would spend years in that dark room.”


Sarah: “Well bitch, you will go back to your room but first lets see if Rex needs a good fuck today.”


Jenny called to Rex and he came running in right away. Jenny laughed and told the bitch that Rex never needed to be locked up. He could be trusted. When she became a good bitch, maybe she would earn some time loose too.

Rex came trotting up and sniffed the bitch. She stuck her ass up for him as he walked up. Rex sniffed her for a minute and licked her couple of times. He licked and then lay down on the bed and curled up to sleep. The bitch stuck her ass in his face again. She truly wanted him to fuck her. She was still under her hypnosis and was not allowed to cum unless Sarah or Jenny would let her. They sometimes let her cum when Rex fucked her. She also knew that she was Rexs bitch. It was her duty to make him happy and she was beginning to take it seriously. She was beginning to become VERY attached to Rex. She hoped Sarah and Jenny would let her spend more time with him. She missed him while she was down in the dark room.

When the bitch stuck her ass in his face after he lay down, he growled and bit her in the ass. She yelped and jumped away. She lay down on the floor next to his bed. A tear ran down her face. Rex was rejecting her more and more as time went by and it was hurting her. She began to sniffle as tears ran down her face. She just looked at him but stayed clear of his bed.

Jenny (to Sarah): “Even Rex doesnt want her useless cunt anymore. If he doesnt want her anymore, there will be no reason to let her out of her room. Rex will have to decide. She belongs to him.”


Sarah: “Look, she is even crying. Now she knows what it is like to lose someone you love. He wont even let her sleep near him anymore. She is not even a good fuck for a dog anymore.”


Normally that would have been funny but the two girls just looked at each other and said nothing. For all their teasing and picking on her that they did, they were hoping more and more that she was truly changing and not simply “acting”. Jenny walked over and locked the chain on her that attached her to the floor bolt.

Soon the bitch closed her eyes when she realized that Rex didnt want her near him. She lie on the floor and gradually fell asleep. Sarah and Jenny left the room quietly and went upstairs so they wouldnt wake her up. Sarah was still very horny but every time she reached down Jenny pulled her hand away, telling Sarah that it was HER pussy and that it was only attached to Sarah. Sarah gave her a pleading look. This is not what she meant by telling Jenny that her own pussy belonged to Jenny.


Sarah: “Please let me play with “your” pussy. Please? I want to so badly.”


Jenny: I can see that. You have no self control. (Pointing at Sarah) You gave me that pussy, didnt you?”


Sarah: “It was and always will be yours. I am begging that you let me play with it once in a while. Please?”


Jenny: “I dont think so. Not right now. Right now this (Pointing at herself) is your pussy and you can play with it as much as you want to.”


Sarah smiled but with a pleading look on her face. She leaned over and put her head between Jennys legs and began to lick Jennys pussy. It was now hers and was the only one that she could play with so she dove in and stuck her tongue up into Jenny as far as it would go. Jenny mewed like a kitten and leaned back with legs spread. Sarah grabbed Jennys legs and pulled her face into her pussy and held on tight. Sarah was an expert at licking and sucking pussy. She wanted Jenny to cum as quickly as possible. She was hoping that Jenny would let her play with her own pussy or at least play with it herself. Still, it had always given her pleasure to watch Jenny cum.

Jenny fell back on the bed breathing heavy and sweating. She was NEVER disappointed when Sarah stuck her tongue into her pussy. As many times as she did, it got better and better. She could NEVER get enough of Sarah.

Sarah kissed her way up jennys stomach and gave her a long tongue filled kiss on the mouth.


Sarah: “I love you.”


Jenny: “I love you, too.”


Sarah: “I will always get satisfaction from pleasuring you. ALWAYS! I beg of you, May I please Play with “your” pussy?”


Jenny: “I tell you what. If you dont touch it all night tonight, I will let you play with it in the morning.”


Sarah: “All night? I dont think I can go all night without touching it.”


Jenny: “Hmmmm…..Well, I think I have a solution to our problem. Wait here and DONT TOUCH!!!”


Jenny came back a few minutes later with some handcuffs and straps. She pulled Sarah up so her legs were tied to the headboard over her head and her arms were tied to her ankles. Jenny then wrapped them all together and secured Sarah well. She was comfortable lying on her back but couldnt move and in NO way could she touch or stimulate herself in any way! The most frustrating part to Sarah was that her pussy was within nine or ten inches of her face but she couldnt touch it. All she could do is look at it and watch it drip and ooze pussy juice on her face and chest.

Jenny rolled over, kissed Sarah and said, “Good night, love. Sleep well. We have a busy day tomorrow.” Sarah replied, “Good night Jenny. You sleep well. Thank you for helping me keep my word to you. I dont think I could have gone all night without playing with “your” pussy.”

Jenny giggled and rolled over and slept. Surprisingly Sarah fell asleep almost immediately and despite her awkward position, she slept well.

Tomorrow they had a busy day. Jenny fell asleep wondering what Sarah had in mind for those two bitches in the porn shop. They were worse than the bitch they had locked up in the living room with Rex. The last thing Jenny thought about as she fell asleep was Tim and that grocery boy.

Tim was a good person and deserved more of them. The grocery boy seemed like a good guy too but he just got on the wrong place at the wrong time. Jenny smiled and slept. Tomorrow was another busy day.



To be continued…………………..

















       


       


       


       

       



Cindys Lessons      PART 11 (THE END)

Authors note:

This Part is kind of long but I wanted to end the story without adding another part. It is a little milder than the rest but I think it is important. I would appreciate any comments. Please Send Comments to Lockedup737@yahoo.com. The email account listed crashed and is no longer valid. THX.



Jenny and Sarah woke the next morning after a good night sleep. As you will recall Sarah was still tied up like a calf for slaughter. She was in bed on her back with her ankles tied over her head to the headboard and her wrists tied to her ankles. She was still horny and because her pussy was right above her face, her pussy juices were dripping on her face and down her chin.

Jenny rolled over and kissed Sarah on the cheek and told her that she wanted to play with “her” pussy a little before her shower. Sarah wiggled and said, “I want you do whatever makes you happy.” Jenny got up and sat on the bed right in front of Sarah. Her pussy was right in front of her face like a TV dinner. Jenny leaned over and very lightly licked Sarahs pussy. Sarah was not allowed to touch it because she had given it to Jenny and ONLY Jenny was allowed to touch it. It sounded like a strange arrangement but Jenny always DID enjoy teasing Sarah and driving her insane with lust.

Jenny continued to lick Sarah very lightly and slowly. Sarah was getting very worked up and pulled and wiggled in her bonds but was, once again, at the mercy of Jenny and her whims. Jenny stop her licking suddenly and pulled back. She slapped Sarah on the pussy a few times and asked her if she wanted her to continue. Sarah was once again getting into a “babbling” stage.


Sarah: “Ahhhh! God..YES! Stop…NO DONT STOP! DONT STOP! Please.


Jenny: “It was simple question, Sarah. Well, I want to continue so I guess what you want is not important. Wait here. Ill be right back. (laughing) Dont go away.”


Sarah: “PLASE! Dont. Wait! OH GOD!”


Jenny: “See what I mean. I tell you what, I will be back in a while and you can think about what you want and make a decision.”


Jenny slapped Sarah on the pussy and then left the room. Jenny didnt really count on all this fun, this morning. She knew they had a busy day but she really DID enjoy teasing Sarah and Sarah didnt have any choice at this point. Jenny thought to herself; this is fun!”

Jenny returned but peeked into the bedroom for a few minutes just to watch Sarah squirm around and to watch her pussy juice flow out of her pussy and all over her face. Sarah had already opened her mouth. She was trying to catch and swallow her own juices. Jenny smiled and wondered why. She figured Sarah was so damn horny and lost in her own lust that it was pure animal instinct at this point. Jenny was hoping that Sarah would remember this or it would be any fun.

Jenny walked into the room and stood at Sarahs side so she could see her. Sarah began to babble again while Jenny sat down along side of the bed so Sarah could see her. Jenny pulled out one of their vibrators and began to rub it on her own pussy. She leaned back and began to moan as she pushed it in and out of her own pussy. Sarah stared and went crazy. She was straining at her bonds. It looked like she was having a seizer. She wasnt even speaking words any more. She was grunting, crying and half screaming but she still stared at Jenny pushing the dildo in and out of her own pussy. It didnt take Jenny long. All this teasing and watching Sarah was taking her close to the edge anyway.

Jenny began to shake and shout. She was Cumming in waves and waves of pleasure. She had closed her eyes and lost herself in her own selfish pleasures. Finally she lay back in a lump of sweat and satisfaction. Sarah just stared at her and screamed. The dildo was still resting in her pussy and buzzing away while she slowly came back to reality. She looked up at Sarah and giggled at what she saw.

Sarah was staring and screaming. Her juices were running all over her face. She was even trying to catch it any longer. She was a mass of primitive flesh lost in a world of absolute lust. Jenny pulled the vibrator out of herself and pushed it into Sarahs mouth and told her to clean it up. Sarah licked and sucked it like a starving person would gobble up a plate of food.

Jenny pulled it away from Sarah and notice that she wanted to continue to lick and suck it. Jenny laughed as Sarah reach for it with her mouth as Jenny pulled it away. Sarah stared at her and began to scream all over again.


Jenny: “If you keep making all this noise, I will leave you here all day and I will have some fun on my own with the grocery boy and Tim. I would like that. Would you like to rest here. You look like you need a little rest. You seem to be getting all excited. That is not good.”


Sarah suddenly quieted down and just shook her head “no”.


Jenny: “Thats better. It is so hard to concentrate with you screaming and moaning all the time. Now I will ask you some questions and you will answer either, “no Jenny” or “yes Jenny” Is that clear?”


Sarah (stuttering): “Yes Jenny”


Jenny: “Good” Now we are making progress.  I only wanted to play with you a little bit but you started making all this noise and screaming. You took the fun out of it. Do you want to please me?”


Sarah: “Yes Jenny.”


Jenny: “Good. I thought that you didnt want me anymore. I was worried and was becoming hurt. Now I will play with my other pussy (Sarahs). You must remain quiet. It is so very disturbing to have you screaming while I am trying to have fun with my other pussy (Sarahs). You DID give it to me, didnt you?”


Sarah: “Yes Jenny”


Jenny: “Good. I would hate to think you would not keep your word to me. We can ALWAYS trust each other, right?”


Sarah: “Yes Jenny.”


Jenny smiled and leaned over and got within an inch of Sarahs pussy and gently blew on it. Sarah was insane with lust but she had enough reason left to know that if she wasnt quiet, she would be stuck tied up all day like this berried in this world of frustration. Jenny giggled and kept gently blowing on it from an inch away. Sarahs aroma was intoxicating to Jenny and she herself couldnt hold back much longer. Then Jenny had an idea. She went around and began to lick Sarahs face. She kissed Sarah a long tongue filled passionate kiss.


Jenny: “Wow! I can taste you like this. You are dripping so much on your own face that I can get as much of you as I want this way. I think that is a great idea. Dont you, love?”


Sarah almost screamed but stopped herself and just shook her head, “no”.


Jenny: “Now youre getting confusing again. Do you mean that you DONT want me to taste you? I have always lusted after your taste.”


Sarah was insane with lust and shook her head “Yes”. Jenny went back to Sarahs pussy which now seemed to belong to her. Jenny liked this arrangement. She began to lick Sarah as lightly as she could without making her cum. It was not easy. Sarah had been hanging on the edge for a half hour, now. Jenny licked but not for too long or Sarah would have cum. Sarah had been straining at her bonds and now had her eyes rolled back into her head. She was totally oblivious to anything around her. Her lust had taken total control. She was its prisoner.

Jenny knew what she was feeling. Sarah had done this to her many times. Jenny knew the mountain of pleasure that Sarah had built up and was happy to be responsible for it but she couldnt hold out any longer. She was going crazy too just watching Sarah. All Jenny wanted was to “dive” into Sarahs pussy. Jenny had another idea. She grabbed the vibrator and decides that this is what shed do. It was about eight inches long and shaped like a cock. Jenny smiled and jammed it into Sarahs ass as hard as she could. Sarah screamed and juice was squirting out of her pussy about two feet in the air. She was coming with a vengeance. Jenny always was curious if anyone could cum by stimulation of the ass alone. Now she knew. Sarah was screaming and convulsing in her bonds. Jenny kept ramming the vibrator in and out of Sarahs ass. After the first wave, Jenny leaned over and stuck her tongue into Sarahs pussy and began to suck as hard as she could.

Sarahs release started all over again. She kept convulsing and shaking in her ties. She must have had several orgasms in a short period of time. As she was calming down a bit Jenny pulled the dildo out of her ass and stop sucking but was gently licking her in order to clean her up. When Jenny looked up, Sarah was completely unconscious but was still breathing heavy.

Jenny untied her and laid her down gently. She was beautiful and Jenny just sat there watching her breath and admiring her wonderful body. She kissed her on the cheek and lay down next to her with her arms around her and waited until she awoke. She didnt wait long. She began to stir as soon as Jenny wrapped her arms around her.

Sarah unconsciously rolled toward Jenny and held her. She was still in her own little world and it just got a little brighter knowing that Jenny was with her. They laid together for over an hour before Sarah leaned over and kissed Jenny. They hugged each other for a minute before they got up.

Sarah was completely exhausted and Jenny helped her into the bathroom where they both had a nice long hot shower together. They told each other that they would always shower together as much as possible. It was not sex. It was more. They wanted to be with each other and touch each other. It was love.

After their shower they went downstairs and checked on the bitch. She was curled up on the little bed with Rex. Apparently, he had let her near him. She was still his bitch. Jenny and Sarah were relieved. Rex was a good dog and the bitch deserved his company. She actually looked happy laying there sleeping with him. Jenny and Sarah went into the kitchen to make Rex and the bitch their breakfast. When they laid the food on the floor, the bitch saw it and began to cry. Rex got his normal food but they had brought the bitch some normal food. It was toast, eggs and some milk.

The bitch looked up at them, crying and simply said, “Thank you but I dont deserve this. What I have done to you and to others is beyond any punishment that I get. She pushed the food away and began to pick at Rexs. He didnt mind. He just licked her and kept eating.

Sarah and Jenny looked at each other and stepped back. They whispered to each other and the bitch didnt hear them. 


Jenny: “She seems to be totally defeated. Ive been watching her for the last couple days. We wanted her to change, not be broken, right?”


Sarah: “You are right. Maybe we should ease up on her a little bit.”


Jenny: “How?”


Sarah: “Well, I know a way to start. I just hope that she will accept it.”


Sarah went over to the bitch and knelt down and looked her in the eyes. The bitch was beaten. She was not pretending anymore. She was totally defeated and Sarah knew it. Sarah could “read” anyone and tell if they were lying.


Sarah: “Get up and fallow me.”


Bitch: “Yes Sarah.”


She spoke with no emotion. She began to turn towards the door leading down to her room but Sarah yanked her chain and pulled her into the kitchen. Jenny fallowed with the plate full of food they prepared for her. Sarah pushed her down onto a kitchen chair and ordered her to EAT! She shook a little and just stared at it. She figured this was some kind of way to torture her and for them to enjoy themselves at her expense but she didnt care. She just sat there, looked at the food and then up at Sarah.

Sarah smacked her on the back of the head and yelled, “EAT!”  The bitch flinched and didnt know what to do so she slowly reached down and scooped up some of the eggs. As she held them to her mouth, she flinched and glanced up at Sarah, then Jenny. She was waiting for the pain and laughter. It didnt really bother her that much. She had accepted her new life. This way she couldnt hurt anyone anymore. Sarah and Jenny had done a good thing. Everyone was better off, this way.

She put the food in her mouth one bit at a time. It tasted so wonderful! She had gotten used to eating shit, piss and dog food. NOW suddenly they were feeding her real food. WHY? When Sarah spoke to her she flinched and dropped her food onto her plate and got down on the floor and waited.


Sarah: “Get back on that chair! We didnt give you permission to get down. Finish your food! Are you still that dense? EAT!”


The bitch crawled back onto the chair and went back to eating. She still was shaking a little. She had NO idea what they were doing. Sarah and Jenny sat at the table with her and watched her eat but said nothing. The bitch didnt mind. She was used to others ignoring her, even when they were in the same room.

When she finished her food, she asked, “May I please go back by Rex?”


Jenny: “No.”


Sarah: “You will stay right here and listen to us!”


Bitch: “Yes Sarah. Im sorry.”


Sarah: “You have been good lately and we will reward you. If you go back to your old ways, you will regret it. We will have to start all over with you education but for now you seem to be learning and we want you to know that we have noticed and want to help you some more. You are slowly becoming a real human being and are realizing how others feel and to take them into consideration. You are here to help others and not just to use others for your own enjoyment. Do you understand what I am saying?”


Bitch: “I think I do, yes. May I ask you something?”


Sarah: “Of course. Go ahead.”


Bitch: “Please forgive me if I am out of line but you and Jenny use each other for their own enjoyments.”


Sarah: “That is different.”


Bitch: “I dont understand. How is it different? I am not being nosey or judgmental but I am trying to understand the difference.”


When Sarah began to speak, the bitch flinched and almost fell to the floor. She knew that she had gone over the line by asking something that was not any of her business.”


Sarah: “Relax and let me try to explain. This is not some kind of trick so we can play with you and use you. Then we would be no better than you. Try to understand the difference. Jenny and I would NEVER do anything to hurt one another. We love each other more than any other thing in the world. Nothing could ever change that. We each have complete trust in each other.

When Jenny and I play like we do, we each know it is to pleasure the other. To us, the other persons pleasure is more important than our own. This is what makes us happy.  Does this make any sense?”


Bitch: “I think so. Please give me time to think about what you have said. I find it hard to understand clearly. Why would someone give themselves pain to please another?”


Sarah (Smiling): “We do not give ourselves over to pain. We do what we have to in order to please the other. It is not pain. It is love. To truly love someone is to totally give themselves over to the other. It is TOTAL trust and love.

To see the smile in one we love is more important than anything and we know for a fact that neither of us would EVER hurt the other. NEVER!”


Bitch: “I need to think this over. This is new to me. I have always gone through life pleasing only myself and now I know it was wrong. What you are saying would take me to the other extreme. I do not fully understand. Please forgive me. May I go and lay back down by Rex? I like his touch. He makes me happy.”


Sarah: “Sure. Go ahead. Think about what I have told you. We will talk about it some more very soon.”


The bitch crawled away but noticed that Jenny was beginning to cry and Sarah walked over and hugged her. The bitch lay down by Rex and put her arms around him. She wasnt tired but now she had something to think about. She knew this was important and she truly wanted to understand.

Sarah and Jenny chained the bitch to the bolt in the living room and made sure that she and Rex had plenty of water. Before they left Jenny asked the bitch if she needed to go out. She said, “No, thank you.”


Jenny (to Sarah): Is she ok? She seems different. Is she conning us again. If she is, she is getting better at it.”


Sarah: “She is not conning us. She is sincere. This is what I have hoped for. There is no one that can con me. Your father taught me how to tell the difference between a lie and the truth. I think we need to take of something with her later when we get back from the porn shop.


Sarah and Jenny drove off dressed in their skimpy clothes although they always had some normal clothing in the trunk of the car just in case they needed it. They headed for the parking lot where they told Tim to meet with them.

When they pulled in, they saw Tim sitting in the sun on the edge of the lot sitting in the grass, reading a magazine. Sarah and Jenny walked over to him and sat down next to him. He smiled when he saw them.


Tim: “Hi. I half expected you guys to not show up but I am glad I was wrong. Is everything “on” for today like you said?”


Jenny: “Yes. Everything is on as we told you. The other guy should be here soon. We told him to be here at EXCATLY 11AM. He has a five minute window and then we leave.”


Sarah: “We would not tease you like that, Tim. If we tell you we will show up, we will. You are a good person and we like you. We will always be sorry for tricking you in the mens room. How are you doing? Is your friend giving you any troubles?”


Tim: “Thx. Its nice to know that I can count on someone these days and I like you two, too. You are both the most beautiful girls I have ever met. I am glad you are my friends.”


Sarah knew he was sincere. Sarah was an expert on reading people and knew when they were lying. Tim was telling the truth. He considered them his friend. She leaned over and kissed him on the cheek and then asked him, “How about your friend? Is he giving you any troubles?”


Tim: “No. He has been quiet and we dont hang out as much as before but I think we are still friends. He is still afraid of the pictures I have of his mouth on my cock. I would not show them to anyone but he doesnt know that. He is still my friend and someday we will come to terms with it.”


Jenny: “Thats good.”


Tim: “What about today? What do I have to do? Yu said I could earn $200?”


Sarah: “Yes. We will give you $200 and you have to do only what we said in the email. Another guy will show up any minute. First, he will give you a blow job. If he doesnt, then its all over and Jenny and I will make it up to you. (Sarah winks) After that you will give him a blow job. You only have to give him one but its up to you if you want to give him more. It doesnt matter. He will pay us and we will pay you. Thats about it. When were all finished, he will leave and you will get paid.”


Tim: “Ok. Im a little nervous but I have agreed. Besides, I have already done this once so how bad can it be?”



Jenny: “Here he is. He is on that bicycle over there.”


The grocery boy rode up and stood at the exact spot that Sarah told him. He stood and waited, all the time looking around.  Sarah watched the whole area carefully and saw that no one was with him. She drove the car around the back side of the lamp his was leaning on and pulled up next to him. He stared at the car for a moment and got in when Jenny opened the door. He sat down in the seat between Sarah and Jenny. He glance at Tim in the back seat and knew why he was there. Sarah drove out of the parking lot to a secluded spot in the country.

Sarah told him to strip. When he was completely naked, Jenny took his clothes and locked them in the back seat. Sarah pulled out some hand cuffs and put them on the grocery boy. He objected at fist but when Sarah said, “Fine. We will just take you back and you can leave”, He said, OK.OK. Do whatever you wish, just please let me cum! Please?”

Sarah and Jenny removed the device form his cock and it immediately sprang to full attention. Jenny rubbed it a little but now too much. This kid was on the edge. They pulled him in the back seat and pushed him on the floor. He was now on his knees in front of Tim. Jenny pulled Tims pants off and stroked Tims cock until it was nice and hard, right in front of the other boys face.


Jenny: “Whats your name, boy, so we know who to make fun of?”


Boy: “My name is Ryan.”


Jenny pushed his face into Tims crotch and said: “Come on, Ryan, start licking and sucking. You had better not spill a drop or this whole thing is off and you will be locked back up and we will leave.”


Ryan: “Please. I will do my best!”


Sarah (Leaning on the back of the front seat): “Lets go then. Give him the best blow job that he has ever had. You had better get started. We dont have all day!”


Ryan slowly moved his mouth to Tims cock. He was not gay and this was disgusting to him but he was desperate. He licked it a little and then put the whole thing in his mouth. Tim moaned a little and Jenny noticed that Ryan wasnt moving much. She slapped the back of his head and told him to start sucking. Ryan began to move his head up and down Tims cock. Ryan began to cry but he had no choice. It was all he could do to gather this much money. It would take him months to save up the whole $500.

Soon his head was bobbing up and down. It didnt take Tim long either. Tim grabbed Ryans head and shoved his cock all the way in his mouth. Ryan choked a little but Tim didnt let up. Finally, Tim was Cumming and shooting his load down Ryans throat. Ryan was choking but didnt give up. He did his best to not spill any. When a little bit began to ooze out of his mouth he doubled his effort to lick and suck it back in. When Tim was finally finished, He pulled out of Ryans mouth and lay back breathing heavy. Ryan had a little drop on his lip and he licked it back in just before it dripped off of his chin.

Jenny: “Well, Sarah, I guess he gets his blowjob.”


Sarah pulled Ryan up on the seat and threw him in the seat. Jenny kissed Tim and said, “Youre on.” Tim.” Tim Smiled at Jenny and got down on his knees in front of Ryan. Tim knew what the girls were up to. They enjoyed teasing people. He knew that all too well. It was not that long ago that he and his friend were their “victims” but he wasnt angry. He truly liked these two beautiful girls and would probably do whatever they asked him to.

Tim took Ryans cock into his mouth and gently licked and kissed it. He put the entire thing into his mouth and slowly went up and down. He was driving Ryan crazy. Tim went VERY slowly and was beginning to understand why the girls enjoyed teasing people. Tim kept his mouth going up and down…..up and down, ever so slowly. When he sensed that Ryan was getting close he looked up at Jenny and asked, “How much did you say I would get for this?”


Sarah (giggling): “We agreed on $200.”


Tim went back to sucking Ryans cock. Ryan kept begging and begging for Tim to “please not stop.” Every time Ryan begged, Tim would stop and look up at him and say,” Im sorry, what did you say? I was concentrating on you but you keep interrupting me. Did you want me to continue or sit and talk to you?”


Ryan: “No please continue. PLEASE! I am sorry to interrupt you. Please!”


Jenny and Sarah laughed and just watched. They realized that Tim was learning very fast and was enjoying teasing Ryan. Tim kept it up for over a half hour. Ryan was a puddle of physical lust and was completely oblivious to the world around him. Jenny tapped Tim on the head and she winked at him. That was he signal to finish him.

Tim suddenly sped up his sucking as fast as he could, when suddenly Ryan let out a howling scream. He shot his load into Tims mouth. Ryan had about a quart saved up from not Cumming in a long time. He literally passed out and just lay there in the back seat.

Tim began to swallow it but as he got up, Jenny reached down and pulled his head to her and kissed him a long kiss while Ryans cum was being pushed back and forth between the two of them. Jenny pulled it all out of Tims mouth and swallowed it herself. Tim wasnt sure what to do. He just looked up at Jenny and smiled. Up until he mat these two women, he had almost NO sexual contact at all but now he was not only getting a lot of experience, he realized how Important it was to be with someone you care about and not just to “to get his rocks off”. These two girls were way out of his league but he liked them and they liked him for some reason.

Sarah pulled Tim up and put the device back onto Ryans cock. Ryan woke up and looked around. He saw Tim and the two girls staring down at him.


Ryan: (to Jenny and Sarah) “Thank you. (To Tim) Thank you too. I have never had anything so wonderful in my life.  May I return the favor, Please?”


Tim (Confused): “You want to suck my cock again?”


Ryan: “Yes. This was great and I want to repay you. If you dont want me to, I will understand but I hope you will let me. I do not like guys but you deserve to be thanked.”


Tim looked up at Jenny and Sarah and asked: “Is this part of the deal? What do you two wish me to do?”


Jenny (smiling): “It is up to you. He seems sincere.”


Sarah: “He is. He truly wants to suck your cock. You do what you want to. You pay will be the same.”


Tim (To Ryan): I would love for you to suck my cock. I will bet that you have never wanted to suck a cock before but go ahead. Suck it good!”


Sarah took the handcuffs off him. He was locked up anyway. Ryan got down on his knees and put Tims cock in his mouth and sucked it for the second time in an hour. His was much more enthusiastic this time. His head was bobbing up and down and he was sucking like a child with a lolly pop. Ryan sucked like a mad man. For some reason he wanted to please this stranger that just sucked his cock. None of them knew that Ryan had almost no sexual contact at all and this experience blew his mind. He sucked and sucked. Tim finally grabbed Ryans head again and shoved his cock down Ryans throat. Tim stiffened up and held his cock all the way in Ryans mouth with his balls up against his chin. Ryan was choking a little but was actually pretty good at swallowing the whole thing.

Most of Tims load went straight down Ryans throat. Ryan never even tasted it. Ryan choked a little more but then Tim suddenly pulled out and Ryan got a face full of cum. Tim lay back and looked down at Ryan.


Ryan: “I hope this was good. I am not experienced at this but I wanted to thank you. I have masturbated a lot but I have NEVER felt anything like want you did, before. If it is ok with you two (Sarah and Jenny), I will leave and keep trying to save money. It will be a lot longer this time. I sold my car to get this money and I have nothing left of any value.”


Sarah and Jenny looked at each other and seemed to have the same idea.


Sarah: “Ryan, wait. I will tell you what. We will forget the money but you will stay locked up. We will let you cum but at a different price. You will perform certain tasks for us in order to earn your release. If you do not want to, then we will unlock you and you will never see us again. It is your choice.”


Ryan: “Will I ever have this feeling again?”


Jenny: “No. You will not. She and I have learned many things and this is one of them. You may go on your way or not. It is your choice.”


Ryan: “Why would you suddenly let me go? You will be giving up all of the money that I can give you. It is not much but you will be giving it up. WHY?”


Sarah: “We have noticed that you are a good person. It is not in our nature to punish good people. We are sorry that you had to sell your car. You have entertained us up until now but things have changed and it is your decision whether you wish to be locked up or not. BE warned, though. If you decide to stay locked up, you will NOT ever cum unless we allow it. You will have the most mind blowing orgasms of your life but only if we let you. We will NOT be generous with them, either. You will do what we say and when we say without argument or you will never see us again.”


Ryan: “I will do as you say. I am not sure why but I am yours. I will do anything to feel like that again. What do you want me to do?”


Sarah (smiling): “You will give him (Tim) $200 and take the other $100 home for yourself. It is yours. We do not want it and you will be earning it anyway. We will contact you by email if we want you. You are allowed to beg as much as you wish to but it will do no good. You have made your decision. Your cock now belongs to us and we will decide when it will be let out of its little prison. You will write down your address and phone number and then you may leave.”


Ryan: “When can I expect to hear from you?”


Jenny: “Who knows? Maybe it will be a day. Maybe it will be a month. We will decide. It might be three months but it is our choice now, not yours.”


Ryan (to Tim): “Thank you. I hope to see you again. Bye Bye.”


Ryan got out and walked away. The girls grabbed Tim and spent the next hour ravaging him. He was completely spent and wore out. The girls had to help him up and walk him to his bicycle. He began to ride home when suddenly he realized that his pants were gone. He looked up just in time to see the girls drive away. He laughed and waved before trying to figure out the best way to ride home without being seen. It was well worth it and he would always do whatever they wanted him to. He would suck a dozen cocks just to be with them. Sarah and Jenny drove off toward the porn shop.


Jenny: “What will we do with Ryan, now that he belongs to us?”


Sarah: “I am not sure yet but we will not abuse him too much. I only want to have some fun with him. Besides, I may have an idea for him. Ill tell you about it later.”


Sarah Jenny pulled up to the porn shop and Sarah explained her entire plan to Jenny before entering the shop.

When they entered, the two girls were there as usual and made some rude comments to the both of them. Sarah and Jenny pretended not to notice and looked around. Sarah had planned well. She was watching customers very carefully. She was counting. The two girls were too stupid to realize that people were leaving but none were coming in. This was part of the plan. Soon Sarah had determined that the four of them were alone. She and Jenny made their move.

Sarah got their bag form around the corner and Jenny brought over some of the items on their shelves. They each grabbed one of the girls. Jenny got the smaller one and Sarah grabbed the larger one and squeezed her neck in just the right spot and she went down like a ton of bricks. She would be “out” for a few minutes.

Sarah told Jenny to hurry. They ripped off her clothes and began to strap her face down on a bench. They tied her hands to the bench legs on one end and her own legs to the bench on the other end. The result was that the girl was strapped down tight face down on her stomach with her ass sticking up. All the time they were strapping her down she was yelling for help.  Soon she was silenced when Jenny stuffed a very large ball gage into her mouth. Now all the noise she could make was a muffling moaning sound.

It was now her friends turn. She was easier. She had not woken up, yet. They had her strapped down like her friend. She was face down tied tight to another bench with her ass ticking up along side of the other girl. Sarah stuffed another ball gag into her mouth as well. The two girls were now tied up tight and silenced by gags within their asses sticking up and their cunts ready for action.

Soon the girl woke up and they both were making muffled moaning sounds and wiggling in their ties. Jenny smiled and said, “They are all set.” Sarah went to the front door and then returned.


Sarah: “You see ladies, we had put a closed sign at the door but now it is gone and you will be getting a lot of customers, I think.”


Jenny took a permanent marker and wrote on each of their backs:


            “FREE FUCK”



The girls kept struggling and trying to yell but they were trust up like pigs to a slaughter. Sarah and Jenny took their seats behind the counter and waited for the fun to begin. The girls kept struggling but all they seem to be doing was to wiggle their asses and cunts in the air for all to see.

It was a typical Saturday. The guys were pouring in. Sarah was getting very familiar with their little business. The first group to arrive was three guys. They seemed to be together. They were talking and laughing as they walked in but got quiet real fast when they all saw two beautiful cunts sticking up in the air with a “free fuck” sign on them.  One guy asked Sarah if this was for real and if they really were free for the taking. Sarah replied, “Those two cunts are absolutely free.  You can take as much of them as you want. It is a weekend promotion. They volunteered and are getting well paid so GO FOR IT!”

The first two dropped their pants and shoved their cocks into the girls asses hard and without gentleness. Both girls squealed into their gags but the guys figured they were enjoying this and they began to pump in and out of them like pistons. The girls couldnt do anything. They probably werent virgins but they were stuck up and rude. They needed a good fucking or two or several actually.

Sarah and Jenny were enjoying the hell out of watching those two stuck up bitchs get fucked all day. They had cum running out of their cunts and asses. It was a regular river of cum down their legs and onto the floor. They had so many guys fuck them that the writing on their backs even wore off but the guys got the message anyway when they walked in a saw them.

About four hours of them being fucked, Sarah walked over and pulled the gag out of the one that seemed to be in charge.


Sarah: “Are you two going to be nice to people from now on or are you still going to be the stuck up bitches that you are?”


Girl: “Fuck you, you god damn bitch!”


Sarah jammed the gag back in and tied up. She went back and sat down next to Jenny to watch some more of the fun. Soon a couple of women came in. They said hi to Sarah and Jenny, then just stared at the two girls that were tied up.


Woman: “Why are those two tied up?”


Sarah: “They were naughty. They needed some attention so we are just helping out. Feel free to do whatever you wish to them. They have been fucked a lot but Im sure that you two can find something there to amuse yourselves. Sarah and Jenny smiled at them and they smiled back. All four of them recognized the others as couples. One of the women brought up a leather strap and asked if it was any good. She wanted one but she wanted to make sure it hurt a lot. She said that her partner was always getting into trouble and needed a good spanking.

Sarah told her to try it out on one of those two and see if it was worth the price. The woman grinned and stepped in behind the girls. They were mewing into their gags and shaking their heads “no”. The woman said, “Are they trying to tell me something? The other woman replied, “I think so. Maybe they want some attention. I think they want to be fucked some more. Look at all the cum running down their legs.”

The two women grabbed some leather straps and stood behind the two girls. They swung the straps wide and hard. They hit the two girls asses with a loud crack. The girls screamed into their gags but it only came out as a loud groan. Sarah and jenny were simply smiling and watching. This was a perfect punishment for two naughty girls.

The women kept spanking them for fifteen minutes before they stopped. They stopped simply because they needed a rest. The girls asses were red and criss-crossed with large red welts. They were crying and moaning into their gags and it seemed to excite the two women spanking them. When the women went looking around the store, Sarah went over to the girls. They were still crying. Sarah leaned down and said, “This is what it feels like to be used and abused by someone. You two need to be a little more understanding to other peoples feelings. You two are not the center of the universe.”

The two women came back with some other items and asked if it was ok to try them out on the girls. Sarah smiled and said, “Sure. Try out anything you need. That is what those two are for.”

The women took out two large dildos, turned them on and shoved one each into their cunts and ass holes. The girls screamed again but no one paid any attention to them. The women shove them in and out and moved them around. Everyone noticed that the girls had stopped screaming and were genuinely moaning. When the two women noticed it they began to shove them in and out faster and faster. The girls were now humping back against them. They had their eyes closed and were getting lost in their own attack. It was obvious to everyone that they were enjoying it.


Woman: “Look at this. These two are really enjoying this. These dildos seem to work very well but we wouldnt want to waist the batteries.”


The women worked the two girls right up to the edge of an orgasm and then pulled out. The effect was interesting. The girls began to shake in the bonds and scream. They all laughed as Sarah checked the two women out with the items they wanted. As they walked out they said, “If you are going to have someone here all the time to test this stuff out on, we will defiantly be back.”

Sarah went over to the girls and smacked them on the ass. They jumped and yelped into their gags. Their asses were very sore and tender.


Sarah leaned down and said, “We will go now. I sincerely hope you two have learned something about using people for your own enjoyment. People dont always want to entertain others as Im sure you have figured out by now. Do you want to be untied?”


The girls nodded.


Sarah: “Would you like some vibrators shoved up you asses and cunts until you cum before I untie you?”


The girls looked at each other and slowly nodded. Sarah laughed and said, “Anything you want.” Sarah and Jenny got some more vibrators. They smiled and shoved them up their asses and cunts like the women before. The girls yelped again but began to moan and hump against the dildos again. Sarah stopped and leaned forward and asked, “Are you sure you want us to continue to shove these in and out of your worthless holes?” The girls nodded instantly. They were obviously hornier than hell and were at the mercy of their own lust. It didnt take long. They would have screamed the house down if they werent gagged. After they were finished shuddering, Sarah took the gag out of the one that seemed to be in charge.


Sarah: “Are you going to be good or do you need more lessons?”


Girl one: “Pease. No more. I understand what you mean. Please let me up but leave her tied. I want to talk to you alone.”


Sarah untied her but left her friend tied up. The girl rubbed her wrists and legs but when she went to rub her ass, she jumped. It was obviously very sore. She wave Sarah to the other side of the room. Her friend was still tied down and shaking in her bonds. She wanted to be untied too but no one was paying any attention to her.

Sarah fallowed her and smiled as she looked at the dried up cum on the girls ass and legs.


Girl: “I understand what you mean about using people with no more thought than when you throw an empty can in the garbage. I think you have come up with a good idea, though. I will use her but I will pay her well and release her after a few hours. If she still wants to leave the she can with no hard feelings.”


Sarah: Lets ask her and find out.”


Girl one (to girl two): “I have a proposition for you. I would like this to be your new job around here. I will triple your pay and you only need to work a couple of hours per day. You will not be physically hurt like we were today. You pay will triple and your hours will be cut substantially. It is your choice. I will take the gag out. Please dont scream. I will let you up if you wish but I would like an answer. What do you say?”


They took the gag out of the other girls mouth. She didnt scream or say anything at first. She stretched her mouth and asked to be untied. Sarah nodded and they untied her too. She got up and rubbed her wrists like the other girl did.


Girl two: “How do I know you will keep your word?”


Girl one looked at her and said: “You have my promise. I do not want to hurt you. I want to increase my business, thats all.”


Girl two: “How do I know you will keep your promise?”


Sarah jumped in and said: “She is not lying but I will make sure she keeps her promise.”


Girl two: “How can you do that?”


Sarah: “I will return often and if you are abused in any way beyond what would be considered normal business, she will pay!  I am responsible for this new arrangement and I will make sure she keeps her word. I believe she is sincere but I will return often. IS that agreeable to you?”


Girl two: “I am not sure about her but I believe you for some reason. I agree but I want four times my pay and only two nights per week!”


Girl one: “Agreed! Now get back down there and finish your shift!”


The girl got back on the bench and the other girl tied her down and shoved the gag in her mouth. She asked her if she was comfortable but all she did was wiggle in her bonds and grunt.


Jenny: “I guess that means “yes”.


They all laughed and Sarah asked if she could try one more thing before they left. The girl in charge told her to do whatever she wanted. Sarah looked at Jenny and smiled. Jenny knew what she had in mind and smiled back.

Jenny and Sarah each got a vibrator. Jenny slide one up her ass and turned it on. Sarah shoved the other one up her cunt and turned it one. Sarah then gently began to rub her cunt and clit. The girl grunted and moaned. Despite all her objections, she was obviously enjoying this.

Sarah kept rubbing her. She was rubbing her hard at first. Sarah rubbed and rubbed until the girl was right on the edge but then she stopped suddenly. The girl was struggling and screaming in her gag.


Girl one: “Whats she yelling about, now?”


Sarah: “I am not sure. Maybe she wants us to stop? I was going to give her a going away present but if she wants us to stop, we can just leave.”


The girl just screamed and shook her head “no”.


Sarah: “So you want us to continue or stop?”


The girl was screaming and frustrated. She was desperate for them to continue but there was no correct answer to the question. She shook her head “yes”. Sarah laughed and said, “See, she wants us to stop.” The girl frantically shook her head “no”.


Girl one: “My, she is confused. What will you do? None of us know what she wants, anymore.”


Sarah smiled and continued to rub her cunt. She moaned and moaned and shook her head “yes”. Jenny smiled and kept shoving the vibrators in and out of her cunt and ass.


Sarah: “I could keep this up all day but you get the idea. If you do this just right, she will do anything for you. Watch what I do.”


Sarah rubbed and rubbed as hard and fast as she could. The girl was on the edge and came in less than a minute. She screamed so loud that it was almost as if she didnt have a gag on. She was convulsing so hard she almost tipped the bench over. Sarah and Jenny suddenly pulled both vibrators out at the same time. They left her somewhat empty and wanting more.


Sarah (to girl one): Do you see what I mean and how to do this? If you keep it up for a long time, she will become insane with lust but dont let it go on too long or she will never let you tie her down again. If you get the timing just right, she will beg you to tie her down.”


Girl one: “I think I understand. Let me try it.”


Girl one went over to girl two and asked her if she wanted another round. The girl was all sweaty and exhausted but still nodded her head “yes”. Girl one was amazed! Her friend was actually begging to be teased. Sarah and Jenny stayed for a while to make sure girl (one) had the timing just right before they left. They made sure the girl was ok, before they went home.  They both seemed to be ok. Girl (one) even admitted that she would like to try it too.

As Sarah left she heard the girl ask, “Can I try this, too. Will you do this to me? I have never seen you cum so hard. Was it as good as it looked……….?”


Sarah never found out the other girls response. She didnt have to. She already knew the answer. This kind of orgasm was addicting. Once you tried it you begged for more. They both smiled and left. Sarah would return frequently but she already knew that they would be ok. They went home.

They walked in the house and saw Rex getting another piece of ass form the bitch. She not only was enjoying it, she didnt mind if anyone saw her anymore. Just as Rex was pumping his load, Jenny yelled out, “You can cum bitch!” The effect was amazing. The bitch screamed with such pleasure, Sarah and Jenny thought a fire alarm went off.  The bitch came three times before Rex was finished. Finally he pulled out and lay down. He began to lick himself clean but suddenly the bitch crawled over and licked him clean, herself.

Jenny and Sarah looked at each other and went to the other room to talk. They talked at length over their plans for her before returning to the living room.


Jenny: “How much longer will we keep her? She doesnt seem at all like she was before.”


Sarah: “She isnt. She is a completely new person. I can tell. I have an idea for her but we need to prepare her first.”


Jenny: “How?”


Sarah: “The first thing we need to do is free her from the hypnotism. We need to learn and sign the French national anthem to her, in FRENCH!”


Jenny: “REALLY?”


Sarah: “Yup. Lets go learn it.”


It took several hours of learning and practice but they finally got it and the bitch was free of her hypnotism. She never even noticed anything different and asked if she was really free of it. Sarah suddenly said, “PAIN ON!” The bitch jumped back and flinched so hard she knocked her head against the wall but there was no pain. She crawled over and hugged Sarahs legs and cried.


Bitch (crying): Why are you being so nice to me? I dont deserve it. It is not just you two but I have caused a lot of people a lot of pain. You should have not released me. I deserve all that pain and more. Thank you.”


Sarah went down on her knees and pulled the bitchs face up and looked her in the eyes.


Sarah: “Tell me this, bitch. Are you the same person that you were? If you answer this question wrong, you will be locked up in the dark room forever! ANSWER ME!”


The bitch was crying but for some reason, not afraid. She would answer it truthfully and if it was the wrong answer then she deserved what she got. She stopped crying, looked Sarah in the eyes and said, “NO! I am not the same person. I deserve to be punished for my behavior but I will never go down that path again. If you feel that I should be locked up forever then I will accept your judgment. God knows that I deserve it but I believe I can truly make this world a little brighter and would like a chance to prove it to you.”


Sarah: “That, Cindy is the correct answer. If you would have simply begged to be free, you would have NEVER seen the light of day again! We have plans for you tomorrow and we need to clean you up.”


Sarah went and unlocked her from the floor chain. Jenny got a key and took the lock form her nose but left the ones in her nipples. As they unlocked her she caught the name “Cindy” and wondered. Was she no longer Rexs bitch? She had hoped she could still be with him. It sounded strange but she really like him. He made her happy.

They lead her upstairs to the bathroom. She hesitated and was afraid. She was not allowed in this room and began to pull away. Sarah forcefully pulled her into the bathroom and closed the door. Sarah and Jenny stripped and started the water in the shower. When it was nice and warm, they pulled her into the shower and began to give her a nice hot shower and clean her up.

They both slowly rubbed soap all over her and rubbed her down from top to bottom. They spent a lot of time on her ass and cunt. Every time they touched her, she tensed up a little. She had NO idea what they were doing but she figured she was headed for more pain and this was simply part of what was necessary. She accepted it and tried to enjoy the shower. It had been a long time since she was able to be in a warm shower.

The girls finished cleaning her up and Sarah wrapped a towel around her as Jenny pulled her form the shower. She almost slipped but Jenny caught her. She was still afraid of this new way to cause pain. She knew it was coming. She knew it so at this point she simply accepted it and quietly waited. She was like a little robot at this point and did whatever they wanted her to do.

Sarah dried her and sat her down and Jenny began to dry and fix her hair. She remembered Jenny doing this once before. When she said something, Jenny looked at her and convinced her that they were going to kill her so now she simply sat quietly. She was feeling nothing. She was simply a little robot obeying their commands.

Sarah left the room and Jenny kept working on her hair.  She was combing it and fluffing it very gently. She was working as if she was a mother getting her daughter ready for a date. Cindy had retreated inward. She wasnt feeling anything. She waited for the pain to begin.

Finally Jenny came around and looked at her form the front and made a few more little adjustments. She spun Cindy around so she could see herself in the mirror. Cindy instinctively looked at herself. Tears began to run down her cheeks. It had been a long time. Jenny then pulled out a key and took the lock from her nose and threw it in the garbage.

Jenny smiled at her and gave her a hug. She tensed up and didnt say anything. Jenny kissed her on the forehead and led her by the hand into their bedroom where Sarah was waiting.

Cindy walked in and saw Sarah by the bed. She had some straps, cuffs and other assorted equipment. Cindy just stopped and didnt say anything. There was no emotion. There was only the clock going through its usual rotation of time passing. Jenny pushed Cindy onto the bed. They tied her down exactly like Sarah was the night before. Her legs were up over her head tied to the headboard and her wrists were tied to her ankles. She was on her back with her ass and cunt sticking up and wide open. Jenny put a pillow under her head and Sarah knew that she was actually quite comfortable.


Sarah looked at Jenny and asked, “Has she said anything?”


Jenny replied, “No. Shes been absolutely silent.”


Sarah: “Cindy, do you know why you are up here with us?”


Cindy (Quietly and without emotion): “no”.


Jenny reached down and kissed her on the cheek and said: “Cindy, Please talk to us.”


Cindy began to cry. No one had ever been so concerned about her. All she could do is wonder…WHY?


Sarah: “Cindy. This is part of your learning. You will pay attention and listen.”


Cindy: “Yes Sarah. I will listen.”


Jenny (Whispering to Sarah): “Why did you say that to her? We are trying to help her, not “teach her”.


Sarah: “Look at her. She has completely withdrawn into herself. I hope we have not taken this too far and broken her. That is NOT what I wanted. I needed her to think of something. I need something to occupy her mind so she doesnt sink into herself.”


Sarah and Jenny each got a vibrator and gently pushed them into her; one in her ass and the other in her cunt. Then they put the gag in her mouth. Sarah and Jenny were always considerate of the neighbors.

They turned on the vibrators and began to tease her. Sarah rubbed and licked on her cunt and clit and Jenny began to twist and bite her nipples. At first she didnt respond but after a few minutes, she began to moan a little.

Soon they had her groaning and wiggling in her bonds. She had no choice. Sarah and Jenny were experts at teasing and Cindy had no choice but to respond. The teasing continued and after about fifteen minutes, Cindy got very close to Cumming so Sarah and Jenny suddenly stopped. Sarah leaned over and blew on her cunt and rubbed her thighs as close to her cunt as she could. Jenny kept twisting her nipples and pinching them. Sarah leaned over and gave Cindy a big kiss on the mouth. She pushed her tongue in and moved it around. Cindy responded but she wasnt used to being kissed like that. No one ever did that before to her.


Sarah: “What do you think, Jenny? Does she want us to finish? Were getting pretty tired and she isnt saying anything.”


Jenny: Lets ask. Cindy, do you want us to finish? Youre not saying anything.”


Cindy could only grunt and groan. Sarah and Jenny stopped to decide what to do. She was doing anything and Sarah didnt want to waste time, if she wasnt enjoying things.


Sarah: “Cindy, would you like us to continue or stop?”


Cindy just grunted and nodded her head.


Sarah: “SO you want us to stop, then? We can as long as its what you want.”


Cindy screamed and shook her head “no”. Sarah looked confused. First she says “yes” and then she says “no”. Sarah replied, “Cindy, you dont seem to know what you want. Well well continue for a while but unless you indicate what you want, will dont know what to do.”

Jenny and Sarah continued. They switched positions. Jenny began to rub and lick her cunt around the vibrator and Sarah went down and sucked and bit her nipples. Cindy began her climb up the wave of lust and pleasure. Her screaming got louder and louder. It was through the gag so it only came out as one long groaning grunt.

Jenny started to pinch and bite her cunt and clit while Sarah continued to pinch her nipples while kissing her around the face and mouth. Cindy began to shack so hard, she looked like she was having a seizure. Her eyes were rolling back into her head and she began to stiffen up. She was right on the edge when suddenly they stopped and stepped back.


Sarah: “Have you made a decision, yet? We keep trying but you are not Cumming and we dont know whether we should keep it up. We were trying to do you a favor but you are just laying there. You must let us know. Do you want us to keep going or should we stop?”


Jenny and Sarah giggled at each other. They both knew the incredible frustration of these questions. Cindy shook her head, “no” and then “yes” several times. She was screaming and moaning into the gag. There was no right answer to their questions. She was desperate.


Jenny: “She seems confused. I guess we will have to make a decision for her. I dont know about you but I am getting tired. Lets quit.”


Sarah: “I guess youre right. I am getting tired too. Lets quit.”


Cindy gave out a scream that would have shattered the windows if she wasnt gagged. She pulled and shook against her bonds but it didnt do any good. She was at a frustration level that took her into her own little world. Sarah and Jenny just laughed. They knew the frustration she was experiencing and they were enjoying it. Jenny leaned down and began to tickle her under her arms. She dug her fingers into her ribs. Cindy just thrashed her head back and forth and continued to scream.

Sarah and Jenny smiled at each other. Sarah took her tongue and licked and bit on Cindys cunt and clit. Jenny pinched and twisted her nipples at the same time. Cindy was so close that she came in less than a minute. She screamed and thrashed for a minute and then passed out.

Sarah and Jenny untied her took the vibrators out and lay her down on the bed. When she was lying down they took the gag out as well and waited.


Sarah: “I hope she understands now what we were talking about earlier about you and me.”


Jenny: “Me too. It is something that cant be explained very well.”

Cindy awoke a couple of minutes later. She woke up slowly, groaning. She opened her eyes and saw Sarah and Jenny looking down at her, smiling. She didnt know what to do. She had never felt this kind of pleasure before. She was amazed at it!


Cindy: “Why did you do that? It was simply wonderful but I do not deserve it and why do you call me by my given name. I will always be Rexs bitch and out of respect for him, I should be called his “bitch” and not “Cindy”.


Sarah: “It was an answer to your question, earlier. You had asked us about Jenny and I doing this to each other but being different than what you had done to others. Do you understand now?”


Jenny: “AS to why we are calling you “Cindy” again is because you have earned it. Besides, Rex will not mind.”


Cindy: “Yes. Such pleasure can only happen out of love. I think I understand the difference. You two are too kind to hand out such pleasure for a simple lesson in humanity.”


Jenny: “We had to. How would you explain it, otherwise? The explanation would be meaningless.”


Cindy: “You are right. May I go back to Rex? Even though he could never make me feel this way, he is all I have. He deserves my full attention. I am his bitch and must please him.”


Sarah: “We will take you back to him but you will soon belong to another. Rex will have to live without you.”


Cindy: “Please, no. Please let me be with Rex. I have gotten used to his cock and now that you have lifted the hypnotism, he will be able to make me cum. Maybe he will enjoy me more this way.”


Jenny: “We like Rex too but we will see how things go.”


Sarah took Cindy back down and tied her to the bolt in the floor by Rex. She crawled over to him, petted him and lay down with her arm around him and fell asleep. Rex only stirred, licked her and went back to sleep, himself. There they both slept.


Jenny: “It is strange that she has attached herself to him like that. A month ago, she would have considered it gross. She has truly changed. What will we do with her, now?”


Sarah: “I have an idea but we need to run a few errands, first.”


Sarah went to the computer and sent Ryan a message to meet them at a different parking lot tomorrow at a certain time. She signed off and her and Jenny left the house for a few hours before returning.

Everything went somewhat uneventful the rest of the day and Sarah and Jenny came down after their usual shower together. Sarah was walking somewhat slowly and anyone that would have seen her would have realized that she had several red marks across her ass. Jenny hadnt gotten much sleep for some reason and she felt Sarah should be punished for it, so she gave her a good spanking with the leather strap.

Jenny smacked Sarah on the ass and told her to take Cindy out for her morning “run”. Sarah yelped and grabbed Cindys leash and led her outside where she took her morning piss and shit. After she cleaned things up, Sarah washed her down and made sure her hair was good and clean.

She brought Cindy in the house and Jenny told Sarah to fix her up and make sure shes presentable. Sarah waddled a little bit as she led Cindy upstairs to get her ready.

Soon the three of them were ready to go but before they left, Jenny shoved Sarah in a chair and crawled under the table and pushed Sarahs leg wide open.  She told Sarah to sit still because she wanted to have her breakfast. Sarah simply said, “Yes Jenny.” Jenny began to gently lick Sarahs pussy. It began to flow immediately and Jenny was lapping up every drop. Jenny quickened her pace and Sarah was soon running like a faucet. Sarah grabbed the table and hung on so she would fall off of the chair. Just before Sarah was going to cum, Jenny stopped and got up. She told Sarah that she was full and that they had better get going. Sarah groaned a nice long groan and said, “Please, jenny, Please finish you breakfast. PLEASE?!” Jenny giggled and said, “No, Sarah. I am full and we need to get going. Now dont you mess around and ruin my lunch. That pussy (Pointing at Sarah) is my lunch today and I dont want you ruining it!”

Sarah just moaned and said, “Yes Jenny.” Cindy was sitting on the floor watching the entire thing. She smiled and now understood what they were doing. She now knew the difference between their relationship and what she herself had down to others. She was praying someday that she would find that kind of love. She looked at the floor and remembered that she was a “non” person. She had been erased from all records and didnt exist. Tears came to her eyes but at least she was taught what real love meant. She always had Rex. HE accepted her as she was and he was her only friend. She would always do whatever he wanted.

Sarah got up with her own juices running down her legs. She grabbed Cindy by the leash and the three of them went out to the car. They put Cindy in the trunk and told her to stay quiet. They drove off to the parking lot were Ryan, the grocery boy, was.

They pulled in and saw him waiting for them.


Ryan: “I havent enough money for you, yet but I will do whatever you want me to.”


Sarah: “We have a proposition for you. You have one of two choices:

  1. You can keep everything as is with us having your key and you paying us like you have been. If you make this choice, the rest of your life will be like this. You will serve our every whim and keep paying us or you will not cum. It is that simple.


Ryan: What is my other choice?”



Sarah:  The second choice is a little more complicated. We will give your keys over to someone else. We will not tell you who it is. They might treat you worse or better. You have no way to tell until you make your choice and then it will be too late to change your mind. You must choose, now!”


Jenny put her hand over her mouth to hide her giggling and Ryan didnt know if that was good or bad. Sarah just stared at him, waiting.


Ryan: “Cant you give me a hint? I dont know what to do.”


Sarah: “MO HINTS! CHOOSE!”

Sarah was not in a good mood. She was still horny as hell but couldnt do anything until Jenny let her cum. It was not by force but Sarah was motivated to please Jenny. That was the reason. She would NEVER go back on her word. She could only stand there and drip down her legs.


Ryan: “What could be worse than paying you two large sums of money that I dont have. I would only be able to cum about twice a year anyway. I choose to have someone else control me.”


Sarah: “You have made your choice! It is done! Jenny, go and get Cindy.”


Jenny went and pulled Cindy out of the trunk. She put a robe around her that barely covered her so they would get in trouble. Jenny led her out in front of Ryan. He stood there staring at Cindy. Sarah smiled at Jenny. She saw the look in Ryans eyes and she was happy. Her plan was working so far.

       Sarah Pulled out the keys to Ryans chastity device and handed them to Cindy. Then she pulled out the keys to Cindys collar and nipple locks and gave them to Ryan. The two of them were confused and shocked. Ryan just stared at the keys to his belt and then at the keys to Cindys collar and locks. Cindy was just as confused. She stared at her keys and then his and then looked up at Sarah and Jenny. They both stared at Sarah and Jenny.

       


       Sarah: “Here is the deal. Each of you will now be in charge of the other. You are both good people and deserve each other. Cindy, you now know what love is and Ryan will learn quickly. He is a good man.

       Ryan, Cindy has learned how to love and how to please others. Both of you will now be together and please the other. Hopefully you will learn to love each other. IS that possible for you two?”


       Ryan (Stuttering): She is very pretty and if she will have me, I will do my best to please her.”


       Cindy (Staring and stuttering): I still do not know why I deserve this. Ryan is acute guy and I will do my best to please him. I have learned much from you and Jenny but I have one question; do you two think you will ever be able to forgive me?”


       Sarah: “It is done, then. You have already been forgiven. You can earn our respect by giving each other a fair chance and try and love each other. You each have the “keys” to the others happiness. Use them well.”


       Cindy: We are free, then?”


       Sarah: “Yes.”


       Cindy: “How will I find a job? You have erased me from all records. How will I help Ryan with our expenses?”


       Sarah smiled and gave Cindy a large envelope. She said, “This will help. You are now a real person again. You exist again, just as before.” Cindy opened the envelope and began to cry. Inside of the envelope was

Cindys drivers license current and up to date

Her social security card

All other id she had. (all current)

A checking account in both Ryans and Cindys names with a $5000 balance

The account had Ryans address on it, also.


Ryan: “WHY?”


Sarah: “We are not evil people. We only want to make others happy and have a little fun along the way. If I have judged you two correctly and I usually do, you will make each other happy for a LONG time!”


Jenny threw Cindy some better although skimpy clothes for her to wear. Cindy dropped what she right in the parking lot and got dressed out in the open. She was not expecting Ryans reaction. He was shocked and a little embarrassed. Cindy looked at him and laughed. She had been naked for so long that she didnt give it a thought. She leaned into Ryans ear and said, “I can see we are going to have a lot of fun.” They all laughed and Sarah smiled at Jenny. They both knew instantly that they had made the right choice.

Sarah asked them if they wanted a ride anywhere but they both said no. They would rather walk. They grabbed each others hand and walked away. Sarah and Jenny laughed when Cindy grabbed Ryan by the crotch and asked him if he wanted a little snack when they got home.


Jenny: “Come on. Get in the back seat so I can finish my lunch! ………………………



Authors note:


This is the end of the story. Sarah and Jenny had many more little adventures with unsuspecting people. They especially had fun with stuck up jocks and cheerleader, types. They were a group that needed a lot of education. They made a lot of use of all their equipment at home. They had found out that people will do ANYTHING to cum…ANYTHING!! There were a lot of high school jocks that now knew what their friends cum tasted like…..LOL…..





               





















Review This Story || Email Author: Lockedup57



MORE BDSM STORIES @ SEX STORIES POST